Selected quad for the lemma: power_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
power_n king_n law_n supremacy_n 3,288 5 10.6148 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A02683 The English concord in ansvver to Becane's English iarre: together with a reply to Becan's Examen of the English Concord. By Richard Harris, Dr. in Diuinitie.; Concordia Anglicana de primatu Ecclesiæ regio. English Harris, Richard, d. 1613? 1614 (1614) STC 12815; ESTC S119023 177,281 327

There are 40 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

celsus_n mancinus_n thomas_n bozius_n franciscus_n bozius_n isidorus_n moscovius_n laelius_n zecchus_n cardinal_n baronius_n &_o last_o alexander_n carerius_fw-la who_o in_o his_o book_n public_o print_v be_v not_o afraid_a to_o call_v bellarmine_n and_o all_o who_o take_v part_n with_o he_o against_o the_o other_o forename_a impious_a politic_n and_o heretic_n of_o our_o time_n i_o say_v in_o these_o point_n of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n and_o at_o this_o present_a time_n the_o jesuit_n extreme_o dissent_v from_o the_o sorbonist_n and_o the_o venetian_a and_o french_a from_o the_o roman_a papist_n on_o the_o other_o side_n all_o protestant-english_a writer_n with_o one_o uniform_a consent_n agree_v in_o the_o king_n supremacy_n as_o they_o who_o willing_o have_v take_v the_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n which_o be_v set_v down_o in_o these_o express_a word_n follow_v viz._n ay_o a._n b._n do_v utter_o testify_v and_o declare_v in_o my_o conscience_n that_o the_o king_n highness_n be_v the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o of_o all_o other_o his_o highness_n dominion_n and_o country_n as_o well_o in_o all_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiasticll_n thing_n or_o cause_n as_o temporal_a and_o that_o no_o foreign_a prince_n person_n prelate_n state_n or_o potentate_n have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v any_o jurisdiction_n power_n superiority_n pre-eminence_n or_o authority_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a within_o this_o realm_n and_o therefore_o i_o do_v utter_o renounce_v and_o forsake_v all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n power_n superiority_n &_o authority_n and_o do_v promise_v that_o from_o henceforth_o i_o shall_v bear_v faith_n and_o true_a allegiance_n to_o the_o king_n highness_n his_o heir_n and_o lawful_a successor_n and_o to_o my_o power_n shall_v assist_v and_o defend_v all_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n preeminency_n &_o authority_n grant_v or_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n highness_n his_o heir_n and_o successor_n &_o unite_v or_o annex_v to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o realm_n so_o help_v i_o god_n etc._n etc._n but_o by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n in_o these_o very_a word_n &_o syllable_n supreme_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a or_o power_n spiritual_a be_v for_o ever_o unite_v and_o annex_v to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o kingdom_n these_o thing_n then_o be_v so_o certain_o and_o manifest_o true_a let_v becan_n himself_o judge_v if_o he_o will_v judge_v sincere_o &_o ingenuous_o according_a to_o this_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n take_v willing_o by_o all_o protestant_a english_a writer_n without_o refusal_n of_o any_o one_o 1_o whether_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v not_o supremacy_n or_o primacy_n in_o this_o church_n 2_o whether_o that_o primacy_n or_o supremacy_n be_v not_o ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a viz._n which_o be_v in_o all_o thing_n &_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a &_o spiritual_a 3_o whether_o the_o king_n by_o his_o primacy_n or_o supremacy_n may_v be_v call_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n to_o wete_z as_o one_o be_v call_v a_o king_n of_o his_o kingdom_n a_o bishop_n of_o his_o bishopric_n or_o a_o bailife_n of_o his_o bailiwick_n 4_o whether_o by_o the_o same_o supremacy_n or_o primacy_n he_o may_v not_o be_v call_v head_n of_o this_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o thing_n and_o cause_n spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a &_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiastical_a 5_o whether_o that_o primacy_n or_o supremacy_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a to_o wete_z which_o consist_v in_o all_o thing_n ecclesiastical_a and_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiastical_a and_o which_o be_v term_v by_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o law_n of_o england_n ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n or_o power_n spiritual_a see_v that_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n respect_v the_o king_n authority_n ecclesiastical_a and_o the_o oath_n of_o fidelity_n his_o authority_n civil_a as_o our_o king_n james_n in_o his_o book_n most_o accurat_o distinguish_v they_o 6_o whether_o the_o king_n by_o his_o primacy_n or_o supremacy_n may_v not_o call_v counsel_n and_o presede_v in_o they_o viz._n as_o the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o this_o kingdom_n in_o all_o thing_n &_o cause_n &_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiastical_a &_o spiritual_a for_o do_v not_o all_o counsel_n consist_v of_o person_n ecclesiastical_a &_o be_v not_o thing_n spiritual_a &_o ecclesiastical_a handle_v in_o counsel_n 7_o whether_o the_o king_n may_v not_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n to_o wete_z as_o the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o thing_n &_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiastical_a according_a to_o that_o of_o saint_n augustine_n 51._o contra_fw-la crescon_n lib._n 3._o c._n 51._o herein_o king_n as_o it_o be_v from_o heaven_n prescribe_v unto_o they_o serve_v god_n as_o king_n if_o in_o their_o kingdom_n they_o command_v those_o good_a thing_n and_o forbid_v those_o evil_n which_o pertain_v not_o only_o to_o humane_a society_n but_o also_o to_o divine_a religion_n 8_o whether_o the_o king_n may_v not_o confer_v ecclesiastical_a benefice_n as_o the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o cause_n &_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiastical_a 9_o whether_o the_o king_n may_v not_o make_v and_o depose_v bishop_n as_o the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o cause_n &_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiastical_a 10_o whether_o the_o king_n may_v not_o compel_v his_o subject_n to_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n as_o the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o cause_n &_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiastical_a 11_o whether_o the_o king_n have_v not_o his_o supremacy_n by_o the_o right_n of_o his_o crown_n as_o the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o cause_n &_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiastical_a as_o for_o excommunication_n if_o the_o jesuit_n mean_v by_o it_o retain_v of_o sin_n that_o respect_v the_o jurisdiction_n internal_a and_o all_o both_o protestant_n and_o popish_a writer_n acknowledge_v that_o our_o king_n challenge_v no_o such_o power_n but_o if_o he_o understand_v the_o inhibit_v from_o the_o communion_n &_o other_o holy_a exercise_n perform_v by_o the_o minister_n and_o faithful_a people_n in_o the_o church_n then_o in_o england_n where_o every_o not_o only_a archbishop_n but_o archdeacon_n and_o his_o official_a do_v excommunicate_a we_o shall_v have_v according_a to_o becane_n his_o dispure_v here_o so_o many_o primat_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n as_o there_o be_v in_o it_o archdeacon_n or_o their_o official_o but_o here_o the_o controversy_n be_v of_o one_o only_a supreme_a primate_n or_o supreme_a governor_n therefore_o this_o question_n of_o becane_n touch_v the_o king_n power_n to_o excommunicate_a be_v very_o idle_a and_o frivolous_a as_o touch_v the_o judge_n of_o controversy_n all_o protestant_a writer_n hold_v no_o mortal_a man_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o they_o notwithstanding_o hainrik_n salobrig_n and_o long_o before_o he_o jewel_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o the_o english_a apology_n 2._o par._n 6._o c._n 13._o d●uil_n 2._o out_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a writer_n especial_o out_o of_o socrates_n and_o cardinal_n cusanus_fw-la write_v that_o christian_a prince_n with_o good_a commendation_n have_v hear_v and_o determine_v some_o controversy_n of_o faith_n according_a also_o to_o these_o word_n of_o charles_n the_o great_a produce_v by_o the_o reverend_a bishop_n of_o ely_n viz._n we_o do_v decree_n and_o by_o god_n assistance_n have_v decree_v 165._o tort_fw-fr tort._n pag._n 165._o what_o be_v to_o be_v firm_o hold_v in_o that_o cause_n or_o controversy_n it_o be_v a_o cause_n of_o faith_n against_o eliphandus_n who_o assert_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o adopt_a son_n of_o god._n last_o who_o will_v here_o regard_v the_o naked_a name_n of_o sander_n genebrard_n pol._n virgil_n and_o thuanus_n which_o becane_n do_v here_o muster_v be_v these_o also_o adversary_n to_o becane_n or_o do_v these_o as_o adversary_n extreme_o dissent_v touch_v these_o question_n as_o for_o caluin_n tortura_fw-la torti_n a_o good_a while_n since_o have_v answer_v thus_o as_o caluin_n do_v not_o allow_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v king_n or_o the_o king_n to_o be_v pope_n 379._o pag._n 379._o so_o we_o approve_v not_o that_o in_o the_o king_n which_o we_o detest_v in_o the_o pope_n but_o caluin_n with_o we_o and_o we_o with_o he_o think_v that_o those_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o king_n in_o the_o church_n christian_n which_o belong_v to_o josias_n in_o the_o church_n judaical_a and_o we_o desire_v no_o more_o now_o have_v pass_v these_o rock_n the_o remainder_n of_o our_o way_n be_v easy_a and_o all_o becans_n jar_n hereafter_o object_v against_o we_o may_v as_o it_o be_v with_o the_o blast_n of_o some_o few_o word_n be_v eftsoon_o scatter_v and_o bring_v to_o nought_o for_o by_o this_o which_o be_v already_o demonstrate_v it_o be_v most_o manifest_a that_o all_o our_o english_a protestant_n writer_n do_v full_o and_o uniform_o agree_v in_o the_o whole_a substance_n or_o
yeain_a deu._n 13_o 10_o leurt_n 24.23_o matter_n of_o religion_n and_o by_o regal_a authority_n to_o punish_v the_o transgressor_n of_o they_o to_o call_v counsel_n of_o synod_n by_o his_o authority_n 13.3_o authority_n 1._o c●ton_n 13.3_o for_o reduce_v of_o the_o people_n to_o god_n worship_n 19.4_o worship_n 2._o chr._n 19.4_o and_o purify_n of_o the_o templepolluted_a touch_v person_n to_o administer_v justice_n unto_o all_o of_o all_o sort_n 29.5_o sort_n 2._o chr._n 29.5_o who_o shall_v be_v to_o speak_v as_o the_o scripture_n do_v the_o head_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levy_v 15.17_o levy_v 1._o sa._n 15.17_o no_o less_o then_o of_o the_o other_o tribe_n the_o king_n no_o less_o of_o clerk_n then_o of_o laikes_n to_o deprive_v the_o high_a priest_n if_o he_o do_v deserve_v of_o his_o high_a priesthood_n 2.27_o priesthood_n 1._o reg._n 2.27_o in_o matter_n of_o religion_n to_o break_v down_o the_o high_a place_n to_o abolish_v strange_a worship_n 32.10_o worship_n exo._n 32.10_o to_o break_v in_o piece_n the_o brazen_a serpent_n which_o moses_n erect_v 18.4_o erect_v 2._o reg._n 18.4_o in_o matter_n of_o order_n to_o ordain_v such_o thing_n as_o pertain_v to_o the_o comeliness_n 17_o comeliness_n 2._o chro._n 24_o 12_o socrat._n lib._n 2_o ca._n 17_o of_o gods_n house_n and_o to_o suppressefrivolous_a and_o unprofitable_a question_n these_o by_o dinine_a right_n be_v the_o right_n of_o regal_a primacy_n to_o weet_v whereby_o the_o king_n may_v 1._o be_v call_v 339_o call_v tort._n tort._n p._n 339_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o call_v counsel_n and_o presede_v in_o they_o 3._o make_v law_n ecclesiastical_a 4._o constitute_v and_o depose_v the_o high_a priest_n 5._o bind_v his_o subject_n by_o oath_n to_o keep_v the_o law_n by_o he_o make_v to_o conclude_v hereby_o may_v the_o adversary_n see_v that_o regal_a primacy_n be_v found_v in_o the_o scripture_n and_o propagate_v from_o the_o first_o religious_a king_n under_o the_o old_a to_o the_o first_o religious_a emperor_n and_o king_n and_o so_o to_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n king_n james_n under_o the_o new_a testament_n and_o in_o that_o long_a distance_n of_o time_n nothing_o impair_v or_o diminish_v what_o then_o never_o to_o decay_v i_o doubt_v it_o not_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n hear_v it_o out_o of_o god_n book_n not_o out_o of_o trivial_n jesuitical_a q_o if_o it_o be_v of_o god_n 5.39_o act_n 5.39_o you_o can_v not_o dissolve_v it_o go_v now_o icsuite_n and_o play_v with_o your_o soolery_n and_o very_o childish_a question_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v i_o ask_v and_o answer_v in_o your_o own_o word_n the_o primacy_n jesuitical_a have_v it_o less_o power_n in_o france_n for_o in_o venice_n it_o have_v none_o at_o all_o than_o it_o have_v have_v there_o or_o else_o where_o so_o it_o appear_v be_v it_o then_o in_o so_o short_a a_o time_n abate_v and_o diminish_v in_o france_n so_o man_n say_v be_v it_o therefore_o near_o his_o end_n i_o do_v not_o doubt_v it_o what_o be_v the_o reason_n hear_v it_o from_o the_o jesuite_n trivial_a that_o which_o sudden_o come_v for_o we_o know_v well_o the_o swaddle_a clout_n of_o loyola_n the_o jesuit_n sire_n be_v soon_o go_v becan_n exam._n 112_o page_n 112_o the_o primacy_n or_o supremacy_n under_o king_n henry_n king_n edward_z and_o qucene_n elizabeth_n be_v spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a but_o under_o king_n james_n it_o be_v not_o so_o and_o what_o it_o will_v be_v be_v uncertain_a here_o be_v a_o jar_n dr._n harris_n reply_n in_o my_o concord_n book_n i_o show_v in_o general_a and_o in_o particular_a the_o regal_a primacy_n under_o k._n james_n to_o be_v the_o self_n same_o which_o be_v under_o k._n henry_n k._n edward_n and_o q._n elizabeth_n add_v that_o it_o so_o will_v continue_v as_o certain_o it_o will_v during_o this_o orthodoxal_a religion_n among_o we_o which_o i_o hope_v shall_v continue_v so_o long_o as_o the_o sun_n and_o moon_n endure_v though_o the_o jesuitical_a and_o all_o other_o papistical_a bowel_n burst_v thereat_o i_o shewod_v it_o in_o general_a for_o that_o the_o supremacy_n than_o be_v and_o now_o no_o less_o be_v the_o king_n supreme_a power_n in_o and_o over_o all_o cause_n and_o all_o person_n within_o his_o kingdom_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a and_o therefore_o in_o the_o self_n same_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n then_o and_o now_o in_o force_n call_v the_o king_n supreme_a power_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a in_o particular_a i_o demonstrate_v the_o same_o by_o set_v down_o the_o most_o material_a point_n out_o of_o the_o express_a word_n of_o scirpture_n wherein_o the_o king_n say_v supreme_a power_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a consist_v in_o which_o say_v both_o general_a and_o particular_a point_n as_o there_o they_o be_v set_v down_o all_o english_a protestant_n writer_n with_o full_a consent_n agree_v without_o any_o jar_n or_o difference_n whatsoever_o if_o this_o shallow_a jesuite_n have_v have_v any_o sound_a matter_n in_o he_o in_o this_o his_o examen_fw-la he_o will_v have_v answer_v to_o the_o matter_n especial_o to_o those_o material_a point_n found_v upon_o the_o scripture_n and_o have_v prove_v that_o either_o those_o particular_a point_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o office_n of_o regal_a supremacy_n or_o else_o that_o we_o protestant_a writer_n jar_n in_o some_o one_o or_o more_o of_o those_o say_v material_a point_n gather_v by_o the_o r._n bishop_n of_o ely_n and_o there_o set_v down_o as_o not_o warrant_v by_o holy_a write_v to_o belong_v to_o king_n but_o this_o jesuite_n pass_v they_o over_o with_o noli_fw-la metangere_fw-la and_o only_o set_v before_o the_o reader_n his_o twice_o sodden_a joathsome_a colewoort_n viz._n that_o mr._n burhill_n write_v thus_o we_o do_v not_o give_v unto_o the_o king_n primacy_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesîasticall_a but_o rather_o primacy_n in_o and_o over_o cause_n and_o person_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a whereas_o mr._n burhil_n in_o his_o appendix_n to_o the_o confutation_n of_o eudaemon_n page_n 283._o cut_n this_o jar_n all_o in_o sunder_o write_v thus_o in_o the_o 21._o chapter_n of_o my_o book_n against_o becane_n i_o purposely_o and_o plain_o teach_v how_o the_o say_v regal_a primacy_n may_v be_v call_v both_o way_n to_o weet_v primacy_n spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a or_o primacy_n in_o matter_n and_o over_o person_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a and_o that_o they_o who_o call_v it_o spiritual_a primacy_n mean_v nothing_o else_o then_o we_o who_o in_o regard_n of_o the_o cavillation_n and_o calumny_n of_o the_o adversary_n by_o spiritual_a power_n under_o stand_v nothing_o else_o but_o power_n sacerdotal_a or_o episcopal_a call_v it_o primacy_n in_o &_o over_o cause_n and_o person_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a and_o that_o in_o the_o very_a thing_n there_o be_v no_o dissent_n at_o all_o among_o us._n what_o can_v be_v speak_v more_o full_o and_o plain_o to_o put_v to_o silence_v the_o lie_a and_o jar_a lip_n of_o this_o jesuit_n becan_n exam._n 114._o pag._n 114._o it_o be_v your_o private_a fancy_n none_o but_o you_o will_v say_v that_o the_o king_n have_v or_o that_o himself_o challenge_v power_n to_o appoint_v or_o depose_v summos_fw-la pontifices_fw-la the_o high_a or_o chief_a bishop_n who_o shall_v rule_v over_o all_o the_o christian_a world_n and_o who_o dwell_v out_o of_o his_o kingdom_n as_o he_o have_v in_o his_o preface_n monitorie_a protest_v dr._n harris_n reply_n belike_o the_o jesuit_n have_v not_o read_v this_o question_n in_o saint_n augustine_n and_o the_o answer_n unto_o it_o quid_fw-la est_fw-la episcopus_fw-la nisi_fw-la primus_fw-la presbyter_n hocest_n summus_n sacerdos_n what_o be_v a_o bishop_n but_o the_o chief_a priest_n and_o according_o lactantius_n lib._n 4._o ca._n 30._o call_v every_o bishopric_n supremum_fw-la sacerdotium_fw-la the_o high_a priesthood_n if_o the_o jesuit_n can_v understand_v greek_a i_o will_v produce_v ignatius_n ad_fw-la trallianos_fw-la put_v the_o question_n and_o make_v answer_n unto_o it_o as_o augustine_n do_v thus_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d what_o other_o thing_n be_v a_o bishop_n but_o one_o have_v principality_n and_o power_n over_o all_o man_n belike_o the_o jesuit_n will_v be_v bold_a with_o ruffian_n and_o tax_v he_o for_o calling_n athanasius_n who_o be_v no_o pope_n pontificem_fw-la maximum_fw-la the_o high_a bishop_n but_o than_o come_v in_o hierom_n speak_v of_o every_o bishop_n and_o dogmatize_v thus_o ecclesiae_fw-la salus_fw-la in_o summi_fw-la sacerdotis_fw-la dignitate_fw-la pendet_fw-la the_o safety_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v upon_o the_o dignity_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n with_o we_o in_o england_n be_v not_o only_a bishop_n but_o archbishop_n also_o even_o primat_n that_o be_v patriarch_n over_o who_o the_o king_n in_o his_o supremacy_n be_v supreme_a governor_n who_o as_o he_o may_v nominat_fw-la and_o appoint_v so_o upon_o
thing_n there_o neither_o yet_o in_o platina_n who_o be_v well_o know_v to_o have_v write_v the_o life_n of_o boniface_n accurate_o peradventure_o you_o find_v some_o such_o thing_n in_o the_o english_a fable_n but_o they_o out_o of_o that_o island_n carry_v no_o credit_n dr._n harris_n reply_n yes_o i_o find_v it_o in_o the_o paralipom_n vrspergensis_n page_n 365._o thus_o papa_n bonifacius_n 8._o ipso_fw-la apparatu_fw-la in_o jubilaeo_fw-la qui_fw-la tunc_fw-la romae_fw-la agebatur_fw-la se_fw-la solenniter_fw-la ostentavit_fw-la primo_fw-la quidem_fw-la solenni_fw-la die_fw-la in_fw-la pontificalibus_fw-la apparens_fw-la populo_fw-la apostolicam_fw-la ill_a be_v benedictionem_fw-la impartitur_fw-la postero_fw-la die_fw-la imperiali_fw-la habitu_fw-la infula_fw-la caesarea_n insignis_fw-la gladium_fw-la ante_fw-la se_fw-la nudatum_fw-la iussit_fw-la deferri_fw-la et_fw-la sedens_fw-la alta_fw-la voce_fw-la testatur_fw-la ecce_fw-la duo_fw-la gladij_fw-la hic_fw-la boniface_n 8._o in_o time_n of_o jubilee_n show_v himself_o the_o first_o day_n in_o his_o pontifical_a robe_n the_o second_o day_n in_o his_o robe_n imperial_a to_o wit_n the_o imperial_a crown_n on_o his_o head_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o naked_a sword_n bear_v before_o he_o with_o proclamation_n thus_o behold_v here_o two_o sword_n and_o there_o i_o read_v also_o this_o exclamation_n vides_fw-la o_o petre_n successorem_fw-la tuum_fw-la et_fw-la tu_fw-la salutifer_fw-la christ_n cerne_v tuum_fw-la vicarium_fw-la vide_fw-la quò_fw-la ascendit_fw-la superbia_fw-la serui_fw-la seruorum_fw-la tuorum_fw-la oh_o peter_n thou_o see_v what_o manner_n of_o successor_n thou_o have_v and_o oh_o saniour_n christ_n behold_v thy_o vicar_n and_o see_v whither_o the_o pride_n of_o the_o servant_n of_o thy_o servant_n have_v ascend_v further_o in_o aventine_n ut_fw-la ex_fw-la concilio_fw-la vangionum_fw-la i_o find_v this_o write_v viz._n the_o pope_n usurp_v both_o the_o empire_n and_o high_a priesthood_n as_o decius_n and_o other_o worshipper_n of_o false_a god_n be_v wont_a to_o do_v the_o jesuite_n mistake_v my_o purpose_n in_o that_o marginal_a note_n vita_fw-la bonif._n 8._o in_o serto_fw-la which_o be_v not_o to_o show_v where_o it_o be_v write_v viz._n that_o boniface_n go_v in_o procession_n emperor-like_a apparel_v but_o that_o the_o christian_a reader_n may_v be_v direct_v to_o a_o writing_n authentical_a where_o he_o may_v see_v pope_n boniface_n 8._o picture_v out_o in_o far_o worse_o &_o more_o odious_a colour_n namely_o at_o the_o end_n of_o the_o sixth_o book_n of_o the_o decretal_n thus_o in_o the_o year_n 1294_o boniface_n get_v the_o popedom_n but_o not_o without_o the_o crime_n of_o ambition_n and_o of_o other_o ill_a feat_n he_o pretermit_v nothing_o which_o either_o fraudor_fw-la ambition_n can_v compass_v he_o be_v so_o proud_a that_o he_o contemn_v all_o man_n there_o be_v some_o who_o write_v that_o he_o suborn_v and_o privy_o send_v certain_a man_n who_o in_o the_o night_n by_o a_o voice_n send_v down_o as_o it_o be_v from_o heaven_n enter_v the_o chamber_n of_o pope_n celestine_n a_o simple_a man_n shall_v persuade_v he_o to_o relinquish_v his_o popedom_n if_o he_o will_v be_v save_v this_o be_v notorious_a that_o when_o prochetes_n the_o archbishop_n of_o geneva_n be_v before_o he_o on_o his_o knee_n upon_o ash-wednesday_n whereas_o according_a to_o the_o manner_n the_o pope_n shall_v throw_v ash_n upon_o his_o head_n &_o say_v remember_v man_n thou_o be_v but_o ash_n and_o to_o ash_n thou_o shall_v return_v boniface_n cast_v ash_n into_o prochetes_n eye_n and_o say_v remember_v man_n thou_o be_v a_o gibelline_n and_o with_o the_o gibelline_n to_o ash_n thou_o shall_v return_v the_o same_o boniface_n send_v his_o letter_n to_o philip_n king_n of_o france_n first_o to_o exhort_v he_o and_o if_o that_o will_v not_o serve_v to_o threaten_v he_o to_o undertake_v the_o hiernsalem_n expedition_n philip_n commit_v that_o legate_n to_o prison_n whereupon_o the_o pope_n send_v the_o archdeacon_n of_o marbon_n to_o command_v the_o king_n in_o the_o pope_n name_n to_o dismiss_v his_o legate_n and_o if_o he_o refuse_v to_o tell_v he_o in_o the_o hear_n of_o all_o man_n that_o because_o of_o his_o contumacy_n and_o violate_v the_o law_n of_o nation_n the_o kingdo_n ●_o of_o france_n be_v devolue_v to_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n but_o sarra_n send_v by_o king_n philip_n take_v the_o pope_n prisoner_n and_o so_o bring_v he_o to_o rome_n where_o within_o 35._o day_n after_o for_o very_a grief_n of_o mind_n he_o perish_v in_o this_o sort_n die_v boniface_n who_o endeavour_v to_o cast_v terror_n into_o the_o heart_n of_o emperor_n king_n prince_n nation_n and_o people_n rather_o than_o to_o sow_v religion_n among_o they_o who_o also_o endeanour_v to_o give_v kingdom_n and_o to_o take_v they_o away_o to_o put_v in_o and_o to_o put_v out_o who_o he_o will_v learn_v all_o prince_n both_o secular_a and_o ecclesiastical_a learn_v by_o his_o example_n to_o rule_v the_o cleary_n and_o people_n not_o proud_o and_o contumclious_o as_o he_o do_v behold_v here_o gentle_a reader_n first_o how_o great_a the_o ignorance_n of_o this_o jesuite_n be_v who_o know_v not_o that_o the_o treatise_n of_o the_o life_n of_o boniface_n set_v down_o in_o the_o sixth_o of_o the_o decretal_n be_v make_v by_o platina_n second_o how_o unlucky_o the_o ignorance_n of_o this_o jesuite_n here_o be_v which_o have_v minister_v unto_o i_o so_o just_a a_o occasion_n to_o publish_v afresh_o unto_o the_o world_n what_o a_o most_o shameless_a and_o odious_a tyrant_n pope_n their_o most_o renown_a pope_n boniface_n the_o eight_o be_v english_a concord_n becane_n in_o his_o jar_n and_o four_o question_n demand_v whether_o by_o reason_n of_o his_o supremacy_n the_o king_n may_v be_v call_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o i_o in_o my_o concord_n and_o 4._o question_v demand_v whether_o the_o popeby_o reason_n of_o his_o primacy_n may_v be_v call_v the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n consider_v that_o gregory_n the_o great_a write_v thus_o what_o will_v thou_o answer_v to_o christ_n the_o head_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n 38_o lib._n 4._o epist._n 38_o at_o the_o trial_n of_o the_o last_o judgement_n who_o endevore_a by_o the_o name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n much_o more_o by_o the_o name_n of_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o uninersall_a church_n to_o bring_v into_o subjection_n all_o his_o member_n unto_o thou_o unto_o this_o though_o it_o touch_v the_o pope_n necre_n the_o jesuite_n in_o his_o examen_fw-la answer_v not_o one_o word_n english_a concord_n becane_n in_o his_o five_o question_n demand_v whether_o the_o king_n primacy_n consist_v in_o any_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a and_o i_o in_o my_o five_o question_n demand_v whether_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n consist_v in_o any_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n temporal_a that_o be_v in_o a_o dominion_n temporal_a and_o coactive_a consider_v that_o christ_n say_v thus_o the_o king_n of_o the_o nation_n bear_v rule_v over_o they_o but_o you_o shall_v not_o be_v so_o and_o that_o bernard_n write_v thus_o peremptory_o 2._o luke_n 22.25_o consider_v ad_fw-la eug●n_n lib._n 2._o it_o be_v plain_a that_o dominion_n be_v forbid_v the_o apostle_n therefore_o presume_v thou_o to_o usurp_v to_o thyself_o either_o as_o a_o soneraigne_n the_o apostleship_n or_o as_o a_o apostle_n the_o sovereignty_n thou_o be_v plain_o forbid_v one_o of_o they_o if_o thou_o will_v have_v both_o together_o thou_o stalt_a lose_v both_o otherwise_o think_v not_o thyself_o to_o be_v except_v out_o of_o the_o number_n of_o those_o of_o who_o the_o lord_n complain_v say_v they_o rule_v but_o not_o by_o i_o and_o yet_o polon_n martin_n polon_n boniface_n the_o 8_o give_v the_o king_n of_o france_n to_o understand_v that_o he_o be_v chief_a lord_n in_o matter_n spiritual_a and_o temporal_a through_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o command_v the_o say_a king_n to_o acknowledge_v that_o he_o hold_v the_o kingdom_n of_o france_n of_o he_o because_o it_o be_v heretical_a to_o think_v and_o hold_v the_o contrary_n in_o like_a manner_n say_v pope_n adrian_n the_o emperor_n reign_v by_o we_o 1.6_o auentin_n 1.6_o whence_o have_v he_o the_o empire_n but_o from_o we_o behold_v it_o be_v in_o our_o power_n to_o give_v it_o to_o who_o we_o will_v and_o according_a to_o their_o canon_n law_n king_n and_o emperor_n by_o the_o command_n and_o will_n of_o christ_n receive_v their_o power_n from_o the_o pope_n as_o gloss_n as_o extran_n joan._n 22_o cum_fw-la inter_fw-la nonnullos_fw-la in_o gloss_n from_o their_o lord_n god_n hereunto_o the_o jesuite_n make_v answer_v as_o follow_v becan_n exam._n 94._o page_n 94._o in_o the_o 7._o page_n you_o cite_v ex_fw-la cap._n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la nonnullos_fw-la extrau_n page_n 22._o these_o word_n king_n and_o emperor_n etc._n etc._n i_o know_v not_o whether_o more_o false_o or_o ridiculous_o indeed_o false_o because_o in_o that_o chapter_n there_o be_v no_o such_o
matter_n of_o the_o king_n primacy_n or_o supremacy_n and_o that_o becane_n throughout_o his_o jar_n strive_v only_o about_o word_n or_o syllable_n against_o which_o kind_n of_o contention_n st._n paul_n write_v thus_o unto_o timothy_n 14._o 2._o tim._n 2._o ver_fw-la 14._o protest_v before_o the_o lord_n that_o they_o strive_v not_o about_o word_n which_o be_v to_o no_o profit_n but_o to_o the_o pervert_v of_o the_o hearer_n unto_o all_o this_o in_o my_o concord_n from_o page_n 12._o unto_o page_n 19_o becane_n in_o his_o examine_v answer_v not_o one_o word_n ❧_o becans_n jar_n the_o i._o question_n whether_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v any_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n 1._o the_o first_o jar_n or_o contention_n than_o be_v concern_v the_o name_n of_o primacy_n many_o of_o our_o adversary_n admit_v this_o name_n but_o m._n richard_n tompson_n have_v rather_o have_v it_o call_v supremacy_n than_o primacy_n his_o reason_n be_v because_o primacy_n do_v signify_v a_o power_n of_o the_o same_o order_n now_o the_o king_n have_v not_o power_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o bishop_n and_o minister_n but_o a_o power_n of_o high_a and_o different_a order_n from_o they_o ergo_fw-la he_o have_v not_o the_o primacy_n but_o the_o supremacy_n the_o word_n of_o m._n tompson_n pag._n 33._o of_o his_o book_n be_v these_o nos_fw-la in_o anglico_fw-la nostro_fw-la idiomate_fw-la belliores_fw-la longè_fw-la sumus_fw-la quàm_fw-la per_fw-la inopiam_fw-la latini_n sermonis_fw-la nobis_fw-la latinè_n esselicuit_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la dicimus_fw-la the_o king_n primacy_n regis_fw-la primatum_fw-la sed_fw-la the_o king_n supremacy_n regis_fw-la suprematum_fw-la quo_fw-la vocabulo_fw-la nos_fw-la quoque_fw-la deinceps_fw-la utemur_fw-la multùm_fw-la enim_fw-la differunt_fw-la primatus_fw-la &_o suprematus_fw-la illud_fw-la enim_fw-la potestatem_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la ordinis_fw-la videtur_fw-la significare_fw-la hoc_fw-la non_fw-la item_n we_o in_o our_o english_a tongue_n do_v speak_v much_o more_o proper_o than_o we_o can_v do_v in_o the_o latin_a speech_n through_o the_o penury_n thereof_o for_o we_o do_v not_o say_v the_o king_n primacy_n but_o the_o king_n supremacy_n which_o word_n 〈…〉_o for_o that_o primacy_n and_o supremacy_n do_v great_o differ_v primacy_n seem_v to_o signify_v a_o power_n of_o the_o same_o order_n but_o supremacy_n not_o so_o 2._o out_o of_o which_o word_n we_o gather_v two_o thing_n the_o one_o that_o all_o englishman_n who_o use_v the_o name_n of_o primacy_n do_v either_o err_v or_o speak_v improper_o if_o we_o believe_v m._n tompson_n for_o if_o they_o speak_v property_n see_v that_o the_o word_n primacy_n do_v proper_o siguifie_v a_o power_n of_o the_o same_o order_n they_o do_v plain_o understand_v that_o the_o king_n have_v power_n of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o the_o bishop_n and_o minister_n of_o his_o church_n but_o this_o now_o according_a to_o m._n tompsons_n opinion_n be_v a_o error_n wherefore_o either_o they_o do_v err_v or_o speak_v improper_o 3._o the_o other_o be_v that_o a_o conjecture_n may_v be_v make_v of_o the_o thing_n signify_v from_o the_o word_n signify_v the_o word_n supremacy_n be_v a_o new_a and_o late_o invent_v word_n unknown_a to_o the_o ancient_a father_n not_o use_v in_o scripture_n unheard_a of_o in_o the_o christian_a world_n moreover_o what_o do_v it_o signify_v the_o supreme_a power_n forsooth_o of_o the_o king_n in_o the_o church_n wherefore_o this_o be_v new_a also_o sure_o if_o the_o ancient_a father_n either_o latin_a or_o greek_a have_v know_v this_o power_n they_o will_v have_v find_v out_o at_o least_o some_o word_n whereby_o to_o have_v express_v the_o same_o proper_o but_o this_o it_o seem_v none_o of_o they_o do_v english_a concord_n 20_o page_n 20_o be_v becane_n the_o jesuite_n become_v a_o captious_a caviller_n at_o syllable_n pri._n and_o sapre_n our_o sovereign_n lord_n k._n james_n translate_v the_o english_a word_n supremacy_n 54_o supremacy_n apol._n ●ur_n fid_fw-we pag._n 54_o into_o the_o latin_a word_n primatum_fw-la and_o mr._n thomson_n translate_v the_o same_o english_a supremacy_n into_o his_o latin_a word_n suprematum_fw-la here_o be_v full_a agreement_n in_o the_o thing_n itself_o and_o will_v the_o jesuit_n strive_v about_o word_n or_o diu●rs_n name_n of_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n certain_o a_o christian_a king_n be_v neither_o presbyter_n priest_n nor_o 101_o nor_o august_n q_o ex_fw-la viroq_fw-la testa_n mix_v q._n 101_o chief_a of_o presbyter_n that_o be_v bishop_n nor_o chief_a among_o the_o bishop_n that_o be_v archbishop_z nor_o chief_a of_o archbishop_n that_o be_v patriarch_n nor_o chief_a of_o patriarch_n to_o weet_v pope_n and_o in_o that_o sense_n he_o be_v no_o primate_n or_o have_v primacy_n but_o he_o be_v the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o all_o presbyter_n bishop_n archbishop_n patriarch_n and_o pope_n within_o his_o dominion_n who_o supreme_a government_n we_o call_v in_o english_a supremacy_n or_o after_o the_o latin_a word_n which_o our_o king_n use_v primacy_n and_o acknowledge_v the_o same_o by_o our_o oath_n thereof_o take_v but_o now_o let_v we_o attend_v these_o two_o goodly_a consequence_n which_o the_o jesuite_n make_v 1._o r._n thomson_n have_v devise_v a_o new_a latin_a name_n to_o express_v the_o self_n same_o thing_n and_o the_o self_n same_o english_a name_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n therefore_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v new_a the_o father_n of_o the_o nicene_n council_n devise_v a_o new_a name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o express_v the_o deity_n of_o christ_n or_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o deity_n therefore_o be_v christ_n his_o deity_n new_a or_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o deity_n new_a take_v heed_n becane_n of_o such_o a_o consequent_a thus_o rather_o perhaps_o the_o sequel_n will_v run_v more_o roundly_o the_o name_n jesuit_n be_v new_a therefore_o deserve_o may_v the_o jesuit_n be_v call_v as_o blasphemous_a so_o new_a sectary_n indeed_o if_o the_o ancient_a father_n have_v acknowledge_v the_o power_n of_o universal_a bishop_n they_o will_v have_v find_v at_o least_o one_o word_n whereby_o to_o have_v express_v the_o same_o proper_o especial_o consider_v that_o if_o we_o will_v believe_v gregory_n the_o great_a 79_o gregor_n li._n 4._o ep_v it_o 76.78.80_o et_fw-fr lib._n 7_o epist_n 79_o to_o assume_v that_o arrogant_a profane_a sacrilegious_a &_o antichristian_a name_n of_o universal_a bishop_n be_v all_o one_o and_o the_o same_o as_o to_o be_v the_o king_n of_o pride_n lucifer_n who_o set_v himself_o before_o his_o brother_n to_o be_v a_o apostate_n from_o the_o faith_n and_o the_o forerunner_n of_o antichrist_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n we_o read_v thus_o primx_n dist_n 99_o primx_n let_v not_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o sea_n be_v call_v the_o prince_n of_o priest_n or_o high_a priest_n or_o any_o the_o like_a but_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o sea_n but_o let_v not_o the_o very_a bishop_n of_o rome_n be_v call_v universal_a bishop_n let_v becane_n tell_v i_o which_o of_o the_o ancient_a father_n either_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supreme_a power_n over_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o in_o propriety_n of_o speech_n and_o as_o proper_a unto_o he_o call_v the_o same_o primacy_n touch_v which_o chrysostom_n as_o he_o be_v cite_v in_o the_o canon_n law_n multi_fw-la dist_n 40_o multi_fw-la write_v thus_o whosoever_o shall_v desire_v primacy_n in_o earth_n shall_v find_v confusion_n in_o heaven_n neither_o shall_v he_o be_v number_v among_o the_o serwant_n of_o christ_n who_o do_v handle_v or_o contend_v for_o primacy_n his_o second_o consequence_n be_v this_o mr._n thomson_n devise_v a_o new_a word_n or_o name_n whereby_o to_o express_v in_o latin_n more_o full_o and_o proper_o as_o be_v take_v it_o the_o english_a word_n supremacy_n therefore_o whosoever_o do_v not_o call_v supremacy_n in_o latin_a suprematum_fw-la speak_v improper_o fie_o how_o hang_v these_o together_o forsooth_o please_v it_o the_o jesuite_n as_o scatter_a broomeshagg_n to_o conclude_v becane_n himself_o quest_n 12._o page_n 43._o bring_v in_o mr._n thomson_n speak_v thus_o primacy_n be_v a_o royal_a good_a thing_n or_o the_o prerogative_n royal_a which_o can_v not_o be_v take_v away_o by_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n neither_o be_v it_o absurd_a that_o a_o heathen_a king_n shall_v be_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o according_a to_o becane_n his_o dispute_n here_o they_o who_o ascribe_v primacy_n to_o the_o king_n and_o call_v he_o primate_n of_o the_o church_n err_v not_o but_o speak_v proper_o becan_n exam._n 106_o page_n 106_o you_o say_v this_o strife_n be_v about_o the_o name_n it_o be_v so_o i_o urge_v nothing_o else_o but_o of_o they_o strive_fw-mi as_o you_o say_v where_o be_v the_o concord_n which_o you_o promise_v in_o the_o very_a beginning_n you_o despair_v of_o concord_n and_o of_o you_o can_v dissolve_v the_o strife_n about_o the_o name_n what_o shall_v become_v
either_o ecclesiastical_a or_o temporal_a soever_o they_o be_v so_o as_o no_o foreign_a power_n shall_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v any_o superiority_n over_o the._n and_o if_o any_o person_n that_o have_v conceive_v any_o other_o sense_n of_o the_o form_n of_o the_o say_a oath_n shall_v accept_v the_o same_o oath_n with_o this_o interpretation_n sense_n or_o meaning_n her_o majesty_n be_v well_o please_v to_o accept_v every_o such_o in_o that_o behalf_n as_o her_o good_a &_o obedient_a subject_n and_o shall_v acquit_v they_o of_o all_o manner_n penalty_n contain_v in_o the_o say_a act_n against_o such_o as_o shall_v peremptory_o or_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o take_v the_o same_o oath_n what_o can_v be_v write_v more_o plain_o and_o full_o against_o this_o jesuit_n not_o only_o to_o stop_v his_o mouth_n herein_o but_o also_o to_o take_v up_o at_o once_o his_o whole_a jar_n follow_v even_o by_o the_o very_a root_n becan_n exam._n 107_o pag._n 107_o those_o word_n of_o i_o thomson_n devise_v a_o new_a name_n of_o this_o thing_n supremacy_n suprematus_fw-la therefore_o the_o thing_n be_v now_o i_o do_v not_o call_v a_o consequent_a but_o a_o conjecture_n again_o you_o be_v contrary_a to_o yourself_o reason_v thus_o the_o name_n of_o jesuit_n be_v new_a therefore_o the_o thing_n be_v new_a if_o the_o consequent_a hold_n in_o this_o why_o not_o in_o the_o other_o etc._n etc._n and_o further_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o compare_v one_o thomson_n with_o so_o many_o father_n of_o the_o nicen_n council_n and_o to_o affirm_v that_o lawful_a for_o he_o which_o be_v lawful_a for_o they_o dr._n harris_n reply_n here_o have_v we_o the_o jesuit_n lie_v in_o his_o byrdlime_n wherein_o the_o more_o he_o struggle_v the_o worse_o he_o be_v enwrap_v and_o whence_o he_o seek_v to_o go_v out_o by_o go_v out_o of_o his_o wit_n say_v it_o be_v his_o conjecture_n from_o no_o consequent_a of_o reason_n as_o though_o every_o conjecture_n reasonable_a do_v not_o lean_a upon_o some_o reason_n probable_a if_o therefore_o his_o conjecture_n be_v ground_v upon_o no_o reason_n it_o follow_v that_o he_o with_o his_o conjecture_n be_v unreasonable_a but_o with_o what_o face_n unless_o he_o be_v extreme_o ignorant_a in_o the_o very_a petite_fw-fr rule_n of_o logic_n can_v he_o deny_v it_o to_o be_v a_o consequent_a stand_v upon_o two_o proposition_n reduce_v by_o himself_o into_o form_n enthymematicall_a the_o late_a the_o conclusion_n infer_v upon_o the_o former_a contain_v the_o medium_fw-la in_o it_o viz._n a_o new_a name_n impose_v with_o the_o particle-note_n of_o inference_n or_o consequence_n viz._n igitur_fw-la therefore_o &_o have_v his_o forerunner-watch-word_n colligimus_fw-la we_o gather_v give_v warning_n of_o a_o consequent_a to_o follow_v now_o then_o draw_v out_o this_o reason_n into_o his_o full_a syllogistical_a form_n it_o will_v run_v and_o can_v run_v no_o otherwise_o than_o thus_o what_o thing_n soever_o have_v a_o new_a name_n impose_v upon_o it_o that_o thing_n be_v new_a hence_o the_o jesuit_n assume_v thus_o but_o the_o king_n supreme_a power_n in_o the_o church_n have_v a_o new_a name_n suprematus_fw-la impose_v upon_o it_o ergo_fw-la the_o king_n supremacy_n be_v new_a and_o i_o thence_o assume_v thus_o but_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o deity_n have_v in_o the_o nicen_n council_n a_o new_a name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d impose_v upon_o he_o ergo_fw-la christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o deity_n or_o christ_n deity_n be_v then_o new_a the_o jesuit_n be_v invery_n great_a strait_n and_o not_o able_a to_o bear_v the_o stroke_n of_o this_o argument_n for_o the_o former_a or_o mayor_n proposition_n be_v his_o own_o the_o late_a proposition_n call_v the_o minor_a or_o assumption_n he_o dare_v not_o deny_v the_o form_n be_v right_o syllogistical_a to_o deny_v the_o counclusion_n be_v against_o all_o rule_n dialecticall_a to_o grant_v it_o be_v heretical_a creep_v into_o a_o bench-hole_n and_o then_o laugh_v &_o say_v it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o compare_v one_o thomson_n a_o private_a man_n with_o so_o many_o father_n in_o the_o nicen_n council_n represent_v the_o church_n that_o it_o shall_v be_v as_o lawful_a for_o thomson_n as_o for_o they_o to_o impose_v a_o new_a name_n can_v any_o man_n imagine_v that_o martin_n becan_n a_o father_n jesuit_n and_o a_o public_a reader_n of_o divinity_n shall_v be_v so_o unlearned_a a_o slug_n as_o he_o palpable_o here_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v true_o if_o a_o cambridge_n sophister_n have_v answer_v so_o he_o shall_v have_v be_v either_o correct_v in_o the_o school_n or_o hiss_v out_o of_o the_o school_n for_o let_v the_o like_a argument_n be_v frame_v thus_o every_o man_n be_v a_o live_a creature_n the_o king_n be_v a_o man_n therefore_o the_o king_n be_v a_o live_a creature_n and_o thus_o every_o man_n be_v a_o live_a creature_n the_o king_n scullion_n be_v a_o man_n ergo_fw-la the_o king_n scullion_n be_v a_o live_a creature_n if_o any_o silly_a fellow_n use_v becanes_n word_n shall_v with_o becan_n answer_v thus_o it_o be_v ridiculous_a to_o compare_v the_o king_n scullion_n with_o the_o king_n shall_v he_o not_o as_o a_o ridiculous_a ass_n be_v ludibrious_o explode_v these_o as_o the_o other_o syllogism_n respect_v not_o quis_fw-la who_o be_v a_o man_n or_o who_o give_v the_o new_a name_n but_o quid_fw-la whether_o he_o be_v a_o man_n whether_o it_o be_v a_o new_a name_n impose_v nay_o rather_o thence_o the_o argument_n run_v upon_o the_o jesuit_n with_o great_a force_n thus_o if_o the_o imposition_n of_o a_o new_a name_n upon_o a_o thing_n by_o a_o private_a man_n shall_v infer_v the_o thing_n to_o be_v new_a much_o more_o shall_v the_o imposition_n of_o a_o new_a name_n upon_o a_o thing_n by_o public_a authority_n conclude_v that_o thing_n to_o be_v new_a now_o it_o be_v time_n that_o i_o answer_v his_o question_n here_o propose_v viz._n why_o i_o use_v that_o consequent_a against_o the_o jesuit_n thus_o the_o name_n of_o the_o jesuitical_a sect_n be_v new_a therefore_o that_o sect_n be_v new_a which_o myself_o mislike_v i_o answer_v if_o he_o have_v well_o observe_v those_o my_o word_n before_o go_v viz._n ●llud_fw-la fortasse_fw-la rectius_fw-la he_o shall_v easy_o have_v perceive_v that_o i_o mislike_v that_o consequence_n as_o it_o be_v indeed_o most_o childish_a and_o ridiculous_a yet_o by_o the_o way_n of_o sarcasmus_fw-la ironical_o i_o use_v it_o to_o thump_v jesuit_n therewithal_o because_o their_o sect_n &_o the_o name_n of_o their_o sect_n be_v new_a indeed_o becan_n exam._n 108._o pag._n 108._o the_o name_n of_o jesuit_n be_v as_o ancient_a as_o the_o name_n of_o christian_n by_o both_o those_o name_n one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n be_v signify_v but_o the_o name_n of_o caluinist_n hugonot_n etc._n etc._n be_v new_a herein_o peradventure_o the_o comparison_n be_v fit_a that_o as_o those_o father_n denise_v a_o new_a word_n or_o name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d to_o abolish_v the_o name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d which_o the_o arian_n use_v so_o thomson_n devise_v a_o new_a name_n suprematus_fw-la to_o abolish_v the_o name_n primatus_fw-la which_o the_o king_n burhill_n and_o other_o academiks_n use_n and_o again_o as_o the_o nicen_n father_n repute_v all_o for_o hereitick_n who_o use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d so_o thomson_n shall_v account_v those_o to_o be_v heretic_n that_o use_v the_o word_n primatus_fw-la but_o what_o concord_n be_v this_o rather_o a_o huge_a jar_n dr._n harris_n reply_n the_o uniform_a concord_n in_o the_o thing_n itself_o &_o name_n of_o the_o thing_n have_v be_v heretofore_o in_o this_o book_n demonstrate_v sufficient_o the_o jesuit_n eye_n therefore_o seem_v to_o see_v here_o a_o huge_a discord_n be_v as_o samson_n fox_n tie_v together_o by_o the_o tail_n within_o his_o head_n but_o separat_o set_v in_o his_o face_n look_v asquint_o which_o appear_v the_o rather_o to_o be_v true_a because_o he_o seem_v here_o to_o behold_v thing_n and_o like_a which_o be_v eucry_v way_n unlike_o as_o first_o those_o father_n do_v not_o devise_v a_o new_a word_n for_o the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d be_v long_o before_o only_o they_o ascribe_v it_o as_o a_o new_a attribute_n to_o christ_n in_o respect_n of_o his_o godhead_n but_o mr._n thomsons_n word_n suprematus_fw-la be_v span_a new_a second_o the_o father_n do_v not_o give_v both_o those_o name_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d and_o 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d unto_o christ_n but_o master_n thomson_n call_v the_o king_n supreme_a government_n of_o this_o church_n both_o suprematum_fw-la and_o primatum_fw-la three_o the_o father_n hold_v they_o for_o heretic_n who_o do_v use_v the_o word_n 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d as_o becane_n here_o say_v but_o mr._n thomson_n hold_v our_o king_n the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n and_o other_o
qui_fw-la ecclesiastican_n &_o temporalem_fw-la iurisdictionem_fw-la habet_fw-la &_o quidem_fw-la supremá_fw-la the_o king_n be_v a_o person_n mix_v to_o wit_n that_o have_v both_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a &_o that_o in_o the_o high_a degree_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o more_o p._n 144._o perleges_fw-la ecclesiasticas_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la regno_fw-la approbatas_fw-la unus_fw-la sacerdos_n duo_fw-la beneficia_fw-la habere_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la nec_fw-la bastardus_n sactis_fw-la initiari_fw-la verùm_fw-la rex_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la potestate_fw-la &_o iurisdictione_n quam_fw-la habet_fw-la in_fw-la utroque_fw-la dispensate_a potest_fw-la by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a law_n appron_v in_o this_o kingdom_n of_o england_n one_o priest_n may_v not_o have_v two_o benefice_n nor_o a_o bastard_n be_v make_v a_o priest_n but_o the_o king_n by_o the_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n ecclesiastical_a which_o he_o have_v can_v dispense_v in_o both_o etc._n etc._n 3._o m._n tompson_n and_o m._n burhill_n do_v absolute_o deny_v it_o m._n thomson_n pag._n 80._o of_o his_o book_n write_v thus_o primatus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la definiendus_fw-la per_fw-la iurisdictionem_fw-la ecclesiasticam_fw-la sed_fw-la per_fw-la gubernationem_fw-la supremam_fw-la the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v define_v by_o jurisdiction_n ecclesisstical_a but_o by_o supreme_a government_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o pag_n 95._o diximus_fw-la regem_fw-la gubernare_fw-la quidem_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la ecclesiasticè_fw-la we_o have_v say_v before_o that_o the_o king_n indeed_o do_v govern_v ecclesiastical_a thing_n but_o not_o ecclesiastical_o and_o why_o i_o pray_v you_o because_o for_o sooth_n be_v have_v not_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiatical_o but_o onoly_a temporal_a and_o heerounto_o agreath_n must_v buchill_n pag._n 234._o grant_v this_o negatine_n proposition_n rex_fw-la say_v he_o nullam_fw-la habet_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la ecclesiasticam_fw-la nec_fw-la in_o foro_fw-la interiori_fw-la nec_fw-la inexteriori_fw-la the_o king_n have_v no_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a neither_o in_o the_o interior_a nor_o exterior_a court_n etc._n etc._n 4._o now_o my_o lord_n of_o ely_n he_o distinguish_v in_o this_o case_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o m._n tookers_n book_n pag._n 305._o in_o these_o word_n habet_fw-la rex_fw-la omnem_fw-la iurisdictionem_fw-la spiritualem_fw-la in_fw-la foro_fw-la exterioti_fw-la exceptis_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la censuris_fw-la the_o king_n have_v all_o inrisaction_n spiritual_a in_o the_o extoriour_a court_n except_o be_v certain_a consure_n etc._n etc._n so_o as_o now_o to_o this_o question_n to_o weet_v whether_o the_o king_n as_o he_o be_v primate_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n have_v any_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a in_o the_o exterior_a court_n we_o must_v answer_v thus_o first_o with_o m._n tooker_n and_o m._n salclebridge_n that_o he_o have_v most_o ample_a most_o full_a and_o supreme_a jurisdiction_n second_o with_o my_o lord_n of_o ely_n that_o he_o have_v indeed_o some_o but_o notall_a and_o last_o with_o m._n burhill_n and_o m._n thomson_n that_o he_o have_v none_o no_o not_o any_o one_o jot_n at_o all_o english_a concord_n 38_o pag._n 38_o these_o be_v the_o very_a express_a word_n of_o the_o law_n of_o england_n which_o be_v now_o in_o force_n elzab_n star_n 1._o elzab_n that_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n which_o be_v exercise_v heretofore_o or_o lawful_o may_v be_v exercise_v by_o any_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a power_n to_o visit_v the_o ecclesiastical_a state_n &_o order_n also_o to_o reform_v &_o to_o bring_v into_o order_n and_o to_o correct_v ecclesiastical_a person_n all_o error_n heresy_n schism_n etc._n etc._n be_v for_o ever_o unite_v and_o annex_v to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o kingdom_n whereby_o the_o king_n of_o england_n through_o his_o full_a power_n by_o his_o letter_n patent_n may_v assign_v &_o authorise_v such_o person_n be_v natural_a bear_v subject_n as_o he_o shall_v think_v meet_a to_o exercise_v &_o execute_v under_o his_o highness_n all_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n and_o preeminence_n in_o any_o wise_a touch_v or_o concern_v any_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n within_o his_o highness_n dominion_n now_o all_o protestant_a english_a writer_n in_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n which_o they_o have_v take_v 56._o lorament_n primate_n in_o apol._n reg._n pag._n 56._o have_v open_o testify_v &_o in_o their_o conscience_n declare_v that_o they_o will_v with_o all_o their_o power_n aid_n &_o defend_v all_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n and_o preeminence_n unite_v and_o annex_v to_o the_o crown_n of_o this_o kingdom_n wherefore_o all_o plain_o agree_v in_o the_o thing_n itself_o but_o that_o which_o the_o jaw_n of_o engl._n call_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n &_o define_v to_o be_v the_o supreme_a governmet_a in_o all_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n &_o over_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n m._n thomson_n will_v rather_o call_v supreme_a government_n the_o r_z 151_o torture_n tort._n p._n 151_o bishop_n touch_v this_o matter_n write_v thus_o this_o i_o urge_v that_o the_o jurisdiction_n which_o abbess_n have_v with_o you_o be_v ordinary_a spiritual_a jurisdiction_n for_o the_o abbot_n have_v ordinary_a &_o in_o her_o administration_n the_o abbess_n be_v equal_v with_o the_o abbot_n and_o what_o shall_v let_v it_o because_o they_o can_v exercise_v censure_n excommunicate_a but_o excommunication_n do_v not_o direct_o belong_v to_o the_o key_n of_o order_n 2._o in_o 4._o sentem_fw-la dist_n 18._o q._n 2._o art_n 2._o aquinas_n assert_v this_o excommunication_n be_v no_o act_n of_o the_o key_n direct_o but_o rather_o of_o the_o external_a court_n and_o it_o be_v a_o common_a opinion_n with_o you_o that_o he_o that_o have_v not_o the_o key_n of_o order_n may_v excommunicate_v those_o thing_n which_o be_v of_o order_n and_o the_o inner_a court_n be_v deny_v to_o woman_n but_o thing_n belong_v to_o the_o outward_a court_n be_v communicate_v to_o layik_n &_o of_o those_o thing_n there_o be_v no_o reason_n but_o that_o woman_n may_v be_v capable_a as_o stepha_n d'aluin_n do_v stiff_o argue_v for_o his_o abbess_n and_o therein_o take_v our_o part_n the_o sorbon_n approve_v his_o opinion_n therein_o although_o we_o ascribe_v not_o to_o our_o king_n power_n of_o censure_n and_o therein_o you_o give_v much_o more_o to_o your_o abbess_n than_o we_o to_o our_o prince_n ma._n burhill_n deme_n the_o king_n to_o have_v any_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o outward_a court_n to_z wete_z sacerdotal_a so_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v all_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n that_o be_v supreme_a and_o regal_a whereof_o only_o our_o controversy_n be_v but_o no_o sacerdotal_a no_o none_o at_o all_o and_o yet_o without_o any_o jar_n whatsoever_o but_o oh_o becane_n can_v you_o without_o blush_v if_o there_o be_v but_o a_o grain_n of_o pudency_n in_o you_o obstinate_o detract_v from_o most_o religious_a king_n all_o supreme_a jurisdiction_n proper_o regal_a when_o woman_n of_o who_o st._n paul_n 1._o tim._n 2._o v._n 12._o i_o permit_v not_o a_o woman_n to_o use_v authority_n over_o the_o man_n with_o you_o be_v capable_a etc._n fran._n steph._n de_fw-fr aluin_n de_fw-fr potestat_fw-la episc_n abbatú_fw-it abbatiss_n ca._n 2.3_o 4.11_o etc._n etc._n and_o partaker_n of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n sacerdotal_a or_o episcopal_a viz._n of_o power_n to_o excommunicate_a clerk_n to_o absolve_v to_o visit_v to_o institute_v to_o present_v to_o benefice_n prelature_n &_o dignity_n ecclesiastical_a yea_o of_o have_v all_o administration_n as_o well_o spiritual_a as_o temporal_a but_o only_o of_o those_o thing_n of_o order_n whereof_o a_o woman_n be_v incapable_a last_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o salobrigiensis_n do_v here_o recite_v touch_v king_n anoint_v with_o sacred_a oil_n etc._n etc._n mix_v person_n etc._n etc._n which_o may_v dispense_v against_o law_n ecclesiastical_a be_v transcribe_v out_o of_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o common_a law_n of_o england_n which_o in_o this_o kind_n of_o argument_n may_v have_v satisfy_v to_o the_o full_a becan_n exam._n 139_o pag._n 139_o thomson_n say_v express_o that_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v not_o to_o be_v define_v by_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n but_o the_o law_n of_o england_n do_v so_o define_v it_o thomson_n say_v that_o the_o king_n do_v govern_v ecclesiastical_a thing_n but_o not_o ecclesiastical_o therefore_o his_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o ecclesiastical_a burhill_n detract_v from_o the_o king_n all_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o outward_a court_n that_o be_v as_o you_o say_v sacerdotal_a but_o tooker_n faith_n that_o all_o jurisdiction_n of_o priest_n be_v in_o the_o inward_a court_n the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n say_v the_o king_n have_v no_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a of_o the_o outward_a court_n but_o only_a power_n of_o censure_n and_o say_v again_o the_o king_n have_v not_o power_n of_o censure_n but_o hainric_n and_o tooker_n say_v the_o king_n have_v all_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n the_o english_a law_n say_v the_o king_n have_v all_o manner_n
peremptory_o or_o obstinate_o refuse_v to_o take_v the_o same_o oath_n the_o like_a interpretation_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n hold_v now_o under_o our_o k._n james_n &_o be_v of_o force_n under_o king_n edward_n 6._o and_o king_n henry_n 8_o whereby_o it_o appear_v that_o to_o imprison_v or_o execute_v any_o here_o for_o not_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n be_v all_o one_o as_o to_o imprison_v &_o execute_v traitor_n for_o not_o acknowledge_v their_o king_n sovereignty_n and_o for_o acknowledge_v the_o pope_n sovereignty_n over_o their_o king_n in_o his_o prerogative_n royal_a crown_n kingdom_n and_o life_n itself_o becan_n exam._n 154_o page_n 154_o you_o ask_v whether_o those_o 6._o office_n viz._n to_o call_v counsel_n make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n confer_v benefice_n create_v &_o depose_v bishop_n excommunicate_v the_o stubborn_a &_o judge_v controversy_n ecclesiastical_a do_v proper_o belong_v to_o peter_n primacy_n or_o which_o of_o who_o office_n hoe_v exercise_v as_o primate_n but_o this_o be_v not_o to_o the_o matter_n the_o question_n be_v here_o whether_o your_o writer_n agree_v that_o your_o king_n as_o supreme_a governor_n may_v do_v those_o office_n i_o say_v they_o jar_v therein_o do_v you_o help_v they_o touch_v the_o power_n total_a counsel_n d._n tooker_n jar_v with_o himself_o &_o with_o hainric_n for_o tooker_n say_v that_o the_o call_n of_o counsel_n do_v primary_o belong_v to_o king_n and_o from_o they_o be_v derive_v to_o bishop_n and_o yet_o he_o say_v that_o the_o apostle_n call_v counsel_n by_o divine_a right_n therefore_o not_o from_o king_n right_a therefore_o by_o divine_a right_n the_o apostle_n successor_n that_o be_v bishop_n and_o not_o king_n have_v power_n to_o call_v counsel_n and_o this_o be_v against_o hainric_n and_o tooker_n himself_o dr._n harris_n reply_n our_o gracious_a king_n james_n in_o his_o book_n of_o apology_n etc._n etc._n vindicate_v and_o prove_v his_o rightful_a supreme_a power_n or_o government_n in_o all_o cause_n and_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiastical_a within_o his_o dominion_n upon_o that_o this_o jesuite_n becane_n infer_v that_o then_o our_o king_n have_v power_n to_o call_v counsel_n to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n to_o create_v and_o depose_v bishop_n to_o confer_v benefice_n to_o judge_v ecclesiastical_a controversy_n otherwise_o that_o he_o neither_o be_v nor_o can_v be_v primate_n or_o head_n of_o the_o church_n because_o all_o those_o be_v office_n proper_o belong_v to_o the_o primacy_n hainric_n in_o his_o becano-baculus_a deny_v that_o his_o consequent_a as_o dr._n harris_n in_o his_o english_a concord_n here_o do_v because_o their_o chief_a primate_n and_o head_n pope_n peter_n do_v never_o as_o primate_n challenge_v to_o himself_o or_o execute_v any_o of_o those_o office_n and_o for_o that_o neither_o in_o scripture_n nor_o any_o ancient_a father_n be_v find_v any_o of_o those_o office_n proper_o to_o belong_v to_o peter_n as_o primate_n or_o head_n of_o the_o church_n the_o jesuit_n force_n be_v too_o weak_a to_o grapple_v with_o hainric_n therein_o hainric_n take_v up_o becane_n his_o own_o description_n and_o thence_o irrefragable_o conclude_v our_o king_n to_o be_v primate_n and_o head_n that_o be_v supreme_a governor_n of_o this_o church_n which_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o he_o have_v take_v from_o becane_n his_o own_o cudgel_n and_o beat_v he_o sound_o black_a and_o blue_a therewith_o as_o become_v becano-baculus_a to_o do_v yet_o christian_a reader_n consider_v what_o just_a cause_n hainric_n have_v and_o i_o have_v here_o to_o urge_v the_o jesuite_n to_o show_v especial_o in_o this_o particular_a what_o general_a council_n cell_n peter_n do_v call_v as_o primate_n or_o what_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a father_n do_v attribute_n to_o peter_n as_o primate_n any_o power_n to_o call_v general_a counsel_n all_o the_o jesuite_n in_o the_o world_n with_o all_o the_o learning_n and_o read_v they_o have_v can_v not_o show_v it_o whence_o necessary_o by_o popish_a rule_n it_o will_v follow_v that_o peter_n be_v not_o supreme_a primate_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o consequent_o that_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o supreme_a primate_n of_o the_o say_a church_n on_o the_o other_o side_n our_o writer_n have_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n and_o ecclesiastical_a history_n demonstrate_v that_o the_o most_o religious_a both_o king_n under_o the_o law_n and_o emperor_n under_o the_o gospel_n have_v call_v general_a counsel_n for_o which_o they_o be_v general_o great_o and_o worthy_o commend_v the_o jesuite_n know_v this_o to_o be_v most_o true_a and_o not_o able_a to_o answer_v it_o run_v into_o his_o start_a hole_n and_o say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o the_o matter_n when_o incee_v it_o stick_v in_o the_o very_a bowel_n of_o the_o matter_n and_o hang_v so_o fix_o in_o the_o pope_n liver_n as_o no_o jesuitical_a dictamne_n can_v draw_v it_o forth_o in_o this_o one_o point_n of_o regal_a supremacy_n the_o jesuite_n can_v not_o produce_v any_o two_o of_o our_o writer_n who_o do_v not_o full_o agree_v as_o for_o hainric_n and_o dr._n tooker_n they_o both_o write_v uniformal_o that_o it_o belong_v to_o orthodoxal_a king_n and_o emperor_n when_o any_o such_o be_v to_o call_v counsel_n here_o therefore_o the_o jesuite_n be_v at_o a_o nonplus_n and_o bring_v to_o his_o shift_n feign_v a_o jar_n between_o dr._n tooker_n and_o himself_o well_o then_o belike_o when_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o writing_n differ_v from_o himself_o that_o be_v at_o least_o a_o hundred_o time_n those_o discord_n must_v be_v style_v popish_a jar_n but_o how_o do_v becane_n prove_v that_o dr._n tooker_n be_v in_o this_o point_n against_o himself_o forsooth_o because_o he_o faith_n that_o the_o apostle_n viz._n when_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a emperor_n by_o divine_a right_n call_v a_o council_n then_o the_o argument_n run_v thus_o all_o the_o apostle_n joint_o in_o time_n of_o persecution_n lawful_o call_v one_o council_n only_o of_o some_o few_o person_n within_o one_o city_n therefore_o in_o time_n of_o peace_n not_o christian_n emperor_n but_o only_o and_o all_o bishop_n in_o the_o christian_a world_n joint_o must_v call_v all_o general_a counsel_n throughout_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n what_o cable_n strong_a enough_o and_o long_o enough_o can_v the_o jesuit_n get_v from_o all_o the_o jesuitical_a crew_n so_o to_o tie_v these_o together_o that_o the_o consequence_n may_v hold_v for_o good_a for_o here_o be_v a_o manifold_a non_fw-la sequitur_fw-la 1._o from_o one_o particular_a act_n of_o apostle_n to_o a_o general_a rule_n of_o all_o bishop_n 2._o from_o time_n of_o persecution_n to_o time_n of_o peace_n 3._o from_o time_n when_o there_o be_v no_o christian_a emperor_n to_o call_v counsel_n unto_o time_n when_o there_o be_v some_o to_o call_v and_o indeed_o do_v call_v all_o &_o every_o one_o of_o the_o most_o renown_a general_n and_o orthodoxal_a counsel_n to_o weet_v the_o first_o six_o of_o they_o becane_n dare_v not_o say_v that_o the_o 4._o first_o general_n counsel_n which_o pope_n gregory_n the_o great_a esteem_v as_o the_o 4._o evangelist_n be_v unlawful_o or_o against_o divine_a right_n indict_v or_o call_v yet_o be_v they_o all_o call_v by_o emperor_n and_o not_o by_o pope_n viz._n the_o first_o nicen_n council_n by_o constantine_n the_o great_a the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n by_o theodosius_n the_o first_o the_o first_o council_n of_o ephesus_n by_o the_o emperor_n theodosius_n the_o second_o the_o first_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n by_o the_o emperor_n martian_a unto_o which_o counsel_n the_o emperor_n by_o their_o letter_n call_v as_o well_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n as_o other_o patriarch_n if_o pope_n leo_n the_o first_o have_v know_v any_o such_o divine_a right_n of_o call_v general_a counsel_n to_o be_v in_o he_o and_o not_o in_o the_o emperor_n he_o will_v neever_n have_v stoop_v so_o base_o as_o suppliant_a upon_o his_o knee_n to_o entreat_v the_o emperor_n and_o the_o empress_n by_o himself_o and_o by_o other_o to_o call_v a_o general_a council_n for_o what_o else_o have_v this_o be_v but_o treacherous_o to_o request_v the_o emperor_n to_o bereave_v he_o of_o his_o divine_a right_n as_o becane_n here_o call_v it_o and_o by_o usurp_a power_n to_o be_v practise_v by_o the_o call_n of_o general_a counsel_n to_o extinguish_v that_o divine_a right_n &_o popish_a primacy_n that_o be_v to_o extinguish_v their_o catholic_n faith_n for_o now_o the_o papal_a supremacy_n be_v the_o very_a capital_a and_o main_a point_n of_o their_o catholic_n faith_n to_o shut_v up_o this_o chapter_n &_o question_n becane_n sit_v upon_o his_o cathedral_n tripos_n shall_v here_o determine_v these_o two_o question_n follow_v first_o whether_o bishop_n only_o or_o archbishop_n only_o or_o only_a patriarch_n for_o these_o may_v not_o be_v confound_v as_o one_o and_o the_o same_o be_v the_o apostle_n successor_n
exterior_a court_n and_o the_o second_o that_o the_o king_n have_v not_o all_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o exterior_a court_n 6._o the_o three_o argument_n be_v that_o whosoever_o be_v subject_a to_o another_o in_o ecclesiastical_a inrisdiction_n of_o the_o exterior_a court_n have_v not_o supreme_a most_o ample_a and_o full_a lurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a of_o the_o exterior_a court_n but_o the_o king_n be_v subject_a to_o some_o other_o body_n in_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o exterior_a court_n to_o wit_n to_o the_o bishop_n because_o he_o may_v by_o he_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o sentence_n and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n as_o master_n burhill_n do_v confess_v ergo_fw-la he_o have_v not_o supreme_a most_o ample_a and_o most_o full_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a in_o the_o exterior_a court_n etc._n etc._n or_o if_o your_o will_n contrariwise_o thus_o he_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o no_o other_o in_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n can_v by_o any_o man_n be_v excommunicate_v by_o sentence_n but_o the_o king_n now_o if_o he_o have_v supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n be_v subject_a to_o no_o other_o in_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a ergo_fw-la he_o can_v by_o any_o other_o be_v excommunicate_v etc._n etc._n i_o doube_v not_o but_o you_o mark_v well_o that_o these_o thing_n do_v not_o agree_v english_a concord_n 68_o pag._n 68_o in_o good_a sooth_n by_o this_o precedent_a chapter_n i_o observe_v my_o aduerlary_n a_o bad_a disputer_n by_o the_o good_a leave_n of_o his_o fellow_n jesuit_n for_o manifest_v hereof_o let_v we_o first_o handle_v the_o question_n you_o inquire_v whether_o the_o king_n may_v excommunicate_v his_o subject_n the_o worthy_a bishop_n of_o ely_n pag._n 151._o doctor_n tooker_n pag._n 15._o master_n thomson_n pag._n 83._o &_o 84._o affirm_v of_o all_o our_o writer_n in_o these_o word_n omnes_fw-la fatemur_fw-la regem_fw-la excommunicandipotestatem_fw-la nullam_fw-la habere_fw-la we_o all_o confess_v that_o the_o king_n can_v excommunicate_v i_o pray_v tell_v i_o in_o so_o full_a a_o concord_n be_v here_o any_o difference_n sure_o no_o english_a jar_n except_o a_o feign_a becanicall_a jar_n for_o the_o jesuite_n follow_v not_o the_o question_n whether_o the_o king_n can_v excommunicate_v but_o whether_o the_o king_n may_v be_v excommunicate_v and_o so_o proceed_v as_o you_o see_v to_o discourse_v of_o the_o office_n of_o supremacy_n that_o be_v to_o say_v whether_o this_o be_v not_o number_v among_o the_o residue_n that_o a_o primate_n may_v be_v excommunicate_v of_o his_o subject_n but_o here_o like_o a_o idle_a sophister_n he_o fight_v without_o the_o list_n and_o first_o it_o be_v worth_a our_o labour_n to_o mark_v his_o admirable_a skill_n in_o logic_n whereby_o he_o go_v about_o out_o of_o our_o most_o uniform_a consent_n to_o wrest_v a_o english_a discord_n this_o be_v therefore_o his_o first_o reason_n the_o king_n can_v execute_v all_o the_o inferior_a action_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n that_o be_v to_o say_v he_o can_v excommunicate_v therefore_o he_o have_v no_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n i_o be_o ashamed_a of_o such_o childish_a jesuitical_a fancy_n be_v the_o jesuit_n become_v ignorant_a or_o forgetful_a of_o the_o question_n be_v not_o our_o controversy_n about_o one_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n in_o all_o matter_n ecclesiastical_a and_o above_o all_o ecclesiastical_a person_n yes_o we_o reason_n about_o the_o office_n of_o that_o one_o only_a supreme_a governor_n as_o supreme_a governor_n according_a to_o saint_n augustine_n ad_fw-la bonifac_o epist_n 50._o inhoc_n ergo_fw-la seruiunt_fw-la domino_fw-la reges_fw-la in_o quantum_fw-la sunt_fw-la reges_fw-la cum_fw-la eafaciunt_fw-la ad_fw-la seruiendum_fw-la illi_fw-la quae_fw-la non_fw-la possunt_fw-la facere_fw-la nisi_fw-la reges_fw-la in_o this_o king_n serve_v the_o lord_n respect_v only_o their_o kingly_a office_n that_o be_v when_o they_o do_v those_o thing_n to_o serve_v he_o which_o they_o can_v do_v except_o they_o be_v king_n now_o sir_n if_o excommunication_n belong_v only_o to_o the_o primate_n or_o supreme_a governor_n for_o in_o our_o question_n they_o be_v both_o one_o than_o it_o shall_v follow_v that_o all_o bishop_n and_o every_o mean_a archdeacon_n for_o both_o these_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v be_v also_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n and_o so_o there_o must_v needs_o be_v by_o this_o jesuit_n logic_n as_o many_o only_a supreme_a governor_n as_o there_o be_v bishop_n and_o archdeacon_n be_v any_o thing_n more_o absurd_a see_v you_o not_o in_o what_o a_o break_v the_o jesuit_n be_v catch_v but_o for_o the_o power_n of_o excommunication_n understand_v thus_o much_o the_o king_n of_o himself_o can_v excommunicate_v no_o man_n yet_o notwithstanding_o by_o the_o consent_n of_o all_o the_o estate_n assemble_v in_o the_o parliament_n he_o can_v make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n by_o force_n and_o virtue_n whereof_o this_o or_o that_o obstinate_a subject_a aught_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v and_o beside_o it_o be_v in_o the_o king_n absolute_a power_n to_o command_v any_o bishop_n within_o his_o dominion_n to_o absolve_v any_o man_n who_o by_o appeal_n he_o shall_v find_v to_o be_v unjust_o excommunicate_v second_o the_o jesuit_n reason_v thus_o the_o king_n give_v to_o other_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v therefore_o he_o he_o himself_o may_v excommunicate_v the_o jesuit_n may_v have_v learn_v out_o of_o bernard_n whò_fw-la they_o take_v for_o a_o brother_n of_o their_o own_o the_o vanity_n and_o weakness_n of_o this_o argument_n who_o though_o his_o doctrine_n herein_o be_v not_o orthodoxal_a yet_o to_o infringe_v this_o consequent_a do_v very_o accurat_o distinguish_v thus_o write_v to_o eugenius_n conuerie_a gladium_fw-la tuum_fw-la in_o vaginam_fw-la tuus_fw-la ergo_fw-la et_fw-la ipse_fw-la two_o forsitan_fw-la nuiu_fw-la etsi_fw-la non_fw-la tua_fw-la manu_fw-la cuaginandus_fw-la etc._n etc._n put_v up_o thy_o sword_n into_o thy_o sheath_n say_v christ_n to_o peter_n then_o say_v bernard_n to_o the_o pope_n yea_o that_o sword_n be_v thou_o yet_o not_o to_o be_v draw_v by_o thy_o hand_n but_o at_o thy_o direction_n both_o sword_n be_v the_o church_n that_o be_v to_o say_v the_o spiritual_a sword_n and_o the_o material_a sword_n but_o the_o material_a sword_n be_v draw_v for_o the_o church_n the_o spiritual_a sword_n by_o the_o church_n one_o of_o they_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o priest_n the_o other_o by_o the_o hand_n of_o a_o soldier_n but_o yet_o at_o the_o pleasure_n of_o a_o priest_n and_o the_o command_n of_o the_o emperor_n three_o he_o argue_v on_o this_o manner_n the_o king_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o bishop_n excommunicate_v the_o king_n as_o be_v theodosius_n to_o ambrose_n therefore_o he_o be_v not_o the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n in_o his_o dominion_n over_o all_o person_n and_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a i_o answer_v that_o if_o this_o be_v a_o strong_a argument_n then_o shall_v not_o the_o pope_n be_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n for_o the_o pope_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o priest_n in_o his_o act_n of_o confession_n so_o write_v panormitan_n papatenetur_fw-la confiteri_fw-la etremiss_a extra_n de_fw-fr poenit_fw-la etremiss_a et_fw-la in_o illo_fw-la actu_fw-la sacerdos_n est_fw-la maior_fw-la illo_fw-la sacerdos_n potest_fw-la illum_fw-la ligare_fw-la et_fw-la absoluere_fw-la the_o pope_n himself_o be_v bind_v to_o confess_v to_o a_o priest_n and_o in_o that_o action_n the_o priest_n be_v great_a than_o the_o pope_n for_o he_o have_v power_n tobinde_v and_o loose_v he_o it_o also_o appear_v by_o a_o councellat_n constance_n basil_n see_v the_o counsel_n of_o coustance_n and_o basil_n and_o another_o at_o basil_n that_o many_o pope_n have_v be_v subject_a to_o bishop_n and_o by_o they_o convent_v judge_v excommunicate_v and_o depose_v from_o their_o papacy_n according_a to_o that_o of_o your_o canon_n law_n come_v again_o de_fw-la fide_fw-la glossa_fw-la dist_n 19_o anastasius_n in_o glossa_fw-la tum_fw-la synodus_fw-la maior_fw-la est_fw-la quam_fw-la papa_n when_o a_o controversy_n be_v concern_v faith_n than_o a_o council_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n therefore_o the_o jesuit_n deceive_v by_o elench_v a_o dicto_fw-la secundum_fw-la quid_fw-la ad_fw-la dictum_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la we_o teach_v that_o our_o king_n be_v not_o primat_n but_o private_a man_n in_o respect_n of_o sacerdotal_a function_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n not_o only_o be_v inferior_a to_o bishop_n but_o also_o to_o every_o other_o minister_n according_a to_o that_o worthy_a say_n of_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n egosemin_n sonil_n plebis_fw-la eten_v collocato_fw-la in_o pontisicale_n solio_fw-la cvi_fw-la nos_fw-la quoque_fw-la maderatores_fw-la imperij_fw-la nostracapita_fw-la submittamus●●_n also_o a_o emperor_n 5._o sozome_n lib._n 6._o ●●_o 7_o the_o do●e●_n lib._n 4._o cap._n 5._o be_o like_a one_o of_o the_o common_a people_n place_v such_o a_o man_n in_o the_o bishop_n throne_n to_o who_o we_o that_o be_v manager_n of_o the_o empire_n may_v submitour_n neck_n the_o pope_n excommunication_n of_o any_o the_o mean_a subject_n of_o
harris_n reply_n whata_n malicious_a &_o scoff_a sycophant_n be_v this_o who_o be_v persuade_v in_o his_o conscience_n that_o i_o even_o in_o this_o strain_n ascribe_v too_o much_o to_o our_o primate_n the_o king_n say_v i_o detract_v too_o much_o from_o the_o king_n herein_o first_o this_o rude_a and_o ignorant_a jesuit_n must_v be_v teach_v that_o according_a to_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o this_o kingdom_n though_o the_o king_n be_v here_o immediate_o next_o under_o christ_n the_o supreme_a governor_n ecclesiastical_a and_o civil_a yet_o it_o pertain_v not_o to_o his_o majesty_n alone_o without_o consent_n of_o the_o order_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o parliament_n to_o make_v any_o law_n even_o civil_a thereby_o absolute_o to_o bind_v all_o the_o subject_n of_o his_o kingdom_n which_o all_o statute_n make_v by_o the_o uniform_a consent_n of_o the_o say_a order_n in_o the_o parliament_n with_o the_o approbation_n of_o the_o king_n majesty_n do_v manifest_a touch_v the_o suppose_a jar_n between_o hainric_n &_o i_o hainric_n write_v general_o of_o the_o power_n of_o all_o christian_a king_n and_o emperor_n to_o make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n assert_v that_o the_o say_v king_n and_o emperor_n laudable_o by_o their_o own_o power_n make_v such_o law_n which_o i_o also_o aver_v and_o i_o here_o write_v of_o the_o power_n of_o his_o majesty_n therein_o as_o it_o be_v use_v and_o limit_v by_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o this_o land_n assert_v that_o his_o majesty_n by_o consent_n of_o the_o order_n or_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o parliament_n may_v make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n by_o force_n whereof_o such_o and_o such_o shall_v be_v excommunicate_v which_o hainric_n will_v aver_v to_o be_v very_o true_a so_o this_o seem_a jarte_n in_o the_o view_n of_o the_o goggle_n eye_v jesuit_n be_v in_o very_a deed_n a_o sound_a concord_n further_o i_o reply_v that_o queen_n elizabeth_n of_o bless_a memory_n by_o her_o own_o authority_n set_v forth_o injunction_n as_o ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o our_o gracious_a king_n james_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n confirm_v the_o last_o ecclesiastical_a law-canon_n make_v in_o the_o convocation_n house_n last_o i_o say_v that_o by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n his_o majesty_n by_o his_o own_o authority_n and_o letter_n patent_n may_v authorise_v any_o person_n be_v natural_a bear_v subject_n to_o his_o highness_n who_o he_o shall_v think_v meet_a to_o exercise_v use_v occupy_v and_o execute_v under_o he_o all_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n privilege_n &_o preeminence_n in_o any_o wise_a touch_v or_o concern_v any_o spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n within_o his_o reasme_n to_o visit_v reform_v redress_n order_n correct_v and_o amend_v all_o such_o error_n heresy_n schism_n abuse_n offence_n contempt_n and_o enormity_n whatsoever_o which_o by_o any_o manner_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a power_n authority_n or_o jurisdiction_n can_v or_o may_v lawful_o be_v reform_v order_v redress_v correct_v restrain_v or_o amend_v to_o the_o pleasure_n of_o almighty_a god_n for_o increase_v of_o virtue_n etc._n etc._n will_v the_o vile_a jesuite_n call_v this_o vilify_a of_o our_o ecclesiastical_a governor_n questionless_a it_o grind_v his_o hart_n that_o our_o church_n the_o true_a visible_a church_n of_o christ_n jesus_n ascribe_v so_o much_o unto_o his_o majesty_n becan_n exam._n pag._n pag._n that_o which_o you_o add_v be_v a_o new_a paradox_n viz._n that_o ecclesiastic_a all_o law_n make_v by_o the_o king_n have_v force_n to_o excommunicate_v and_o yet_o that_o the_o king_n can_v excommunicate_v it_o be_v the_o most_o certain_a rule_n of_o lawyer_n that_o whosever_v have_v power_n to_o make_v apenall_a law_n have_v also_o power_n to_o punish_v this_o common_a rule_n hold_v in_o matter_n civil_a and_o ecclesiastical_a why_o exempt_v you_o your_o king_n from_o the_o common_a rule_n &_o confine_v he_o into_o such_o strait_n dr._n harris_n reply_n to_o a_o unlearned_a jesuit_n plain_a vulgar_a thing_n seem_v paradox_n date_fw-la the_o jesuit_n deny_v that_o clergy_n man_n have_v power_n to_o make_v law_n for_o put_v to_o death_n of_o heretic_n and_o against_o such_o &_o such_o erroncous_a obstinate_a person_n as_o heretic_n and_o dare_v he_o affirm_v that_o clergy_n man_n may_v give_v the_o sentence_n of_o death_n or_o shed_v the_o blood_n of_o any_o heretic_n since_o by_o their_o trivial_a and_o vulgar_o know_v popish_a canon_n they_o may_v not_o sit_v upon_o the_o bench_n when_o the_o sentence_n of_o death_n be_v pronounce_v by_o the_o civil_a judge_n that_o most_o certain_a rule_n of_o his_o lawyer_n be_v most_o plain_o false_a viz._n that_o whosoever_o have_v power_n to_o make_v a_o penal_a law_n have_v power_n to_o punish_v unless_o the_o meaning_n be_v of_o power_n to_o punish_v by_o command_v such_o officer_n to_o punish_v unto_o who_o the_o inflict_a of_o such_o punishment_n appertain_v in_o which_o sense_n our_o king_n also_o may_v be_v say_v to_o excommunicate_v or_o absolve_v that_o be_v to_o command_v bishop_n to_o excommunicate_v or_o absolve_v man_n according_a to_o the_o law_n provide_v in_o that_o behalf_n yea_o further_o the_o king_n write_v of_o prohibition_n absolu_v that_o subject_n of_o he_o which_o be_v wrongful_o excommunicate_v by_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n and_o this_o be_v not_o to_o straighten_v but_o to_o enlarge_v much_o more_o than_o the_o jesuit_n will_v have_v it_o his_o majesty_n supreme_a power_n herein_o who_o know_v not_o that_o christian_a king_n and_o empeperour_n have_v make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n by_o virtue_n whereof_o such_o and_o such_o priest_n shall_v be_v suspend_v deprive_v degrade_v and_o other_o choose_v and_o institute_v into_o their_o benefice_n and_o yet_o it_o pertain_v not_o to_o those_o emperor_n to_o suspend_v deprive_v degrade_v choose_v or_o institute_v the_o same_o in_o their_o own_o person_n and_o that_o this_o rule_n hold_v not_o in_o civil_a matter_n be_v show_v before_o becan_n exam._n 196_o pag._n 196_o my_o second_o argument_n be_v this_o the_o king_n give_v unto_o another_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v therefore_o himself_n have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v or_o if_o he_o have_v not_o that_o power_n he_o can_v give_v it_o to_o another_o you_o deny_v the_o argument_n allege_v bernard_n to_o show_v the_o invalidity_n thereof_o but_o bernard_n rather_o hinder_v then_o help_v your_o cause_n for_o he_o reas●noth_v as_o i_o do_v thus_o peter_n have_v no_o temporal_a possession_n therefore_o he_o can_v not_o give_v they_o to_o another_o he_o have_v care_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n therefore_o he_o give_v it_o to_o his_o successor_n bernard_n say_v nothing_o of_o this_o consequent_a but_o of_o a_o double_a power_n of_o the_o pope_n the_o one_o temporal_a indirect_o all_o office_n of_o which_o power_n bernard_n deni_v that_o the_o pope_n by_o himself_o way_n execute_v the_o other_o his_o power_n spiritual_a direct_o which_o he_o grant_v may_v be_v execute_v by_o the_o pope_n himself_o this_o position_n viz._n no_o man_n can_v give_v to_o another_o that_o which_o he_o have_v not_o himself_o bernard_n and_o i_o assert_v to_o which_o you_o answer_v nothing_o dr._n harris_n reply_n the_o jesuit_n be_v here_o ensnarled_a by_o the_o testimony_n of_o bernard_n as_o one_o fall_v into_o a_o quagmire_n who_o the_o more_o he_o struggle_v to_o get_v out_o plunge_v himself_o deep_a into_o it_o bernard_n assert_v the_o right_a and_o power_n of_o both_o sword_n equal_o to_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n for_o that_o of_o direct_o and_o indirect_o be_v not_o bernard_n distinction_n but_o the_o jesuit_n vain_a and_o new_a find_v fiction_n and_o therefore_o be_v may_v give_v power_n to_o other_o ad_fw-la nutum_fw-la ipsius_fw-la to_o execute_v the_o material_a sword_n yet_o by_o himself_o can_v use_v or_o draw_v out_o the_o same_o what_o be_v this_o else_o but_o that_o one_o may_v give_v power_n to_o another_o to_o do_v that_o which_o he_o can_v do_v himself_o the_o jesuit_n be_v intolerable_o ignorant_a if_o he_o know_v not_o that_o by_o their_o canon_n law_n the_o pope_n be_v make_v lord_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o temporalibus_fw-la by_o who_o king_n reign_v and_o of_o who_o they_o hold_v their_o sceptre_n in_o popish_a book_n print_v and_o allow_v they_o who_o hold_v the_o material_a sword_n to_o be_v in_o the_o pope_n not_o direct_o but_o indirect_o be_v censure_v for_o politilian_a heretic_n these_o times-seruers_a but_o what_o if_o i_o shall_v use_v the_o same_o distinction_n here_o and_o say_v that_o supreme_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a be_v it_o the_o king_n indirect_o to_o weet_v in_o or_o dine_v ad_fw-la custodiam_fw-la utriusque_fw-la tabulae_fw-la to_o pronide_v and_o procure_v that_o all_o ecclesiastic_n perform_v their_o duty_n according_a to_o the_o prescript_n of_o god_n law_n be_v not_o this_o jesuit_n argument_n according_a to_o his_o own_o dispute_n here_o dash_v in_o piece_n for_o as_o the_o pope_n
may_v have_v the_o material_a sword_n indirect_o and_o yet_o have_v no_o power_n by_o himself_o to_o use_v the_o same_o so_o may_v a_o king_n have_v supreme_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a indirect_o and_o yet_o not_o have_v power_n by_o himself_o to_o execute_v the_o function_n of_o jurisdiction_n eccelesiastical_a and_o so_o not_o to_o excommunicate_v true_a it_o be_v no_o man_n can_v give_v that_o unto_o another_o which_o himself_o have_v not_o to_o give_v yet_o the_o king_n may_v give_v authority_n to_o another_o to_o do_v that_o which_o pertain_v not_o to_o himself_o to_o do_v as_o former_o be_v show_v this_o be_v a_o decide_v case_n among_o the_o canonist_n decis_n 2._o tit._n the_o praebend_n quia_fw-la licet_fw-la abbatissae_n aut_fw-la monialibus_fw-la cur_n a_o committi_fw-la non_fw-la possit_fw-la quoad_fw-la exercitium_fw-la actuale_fw-la tamenius_fw-la potest_fw-la ipsis_fw-la competere_fw-la utexercitium_fw-la faciant_fw-la per_fw-la virum_fw-la illius_fw-la potestatis_fw-la capacem_fw-la vide_fw-la notatum_fw-la per_fw-la innocent_a de_fw-fr praeb_n c_o lateran_n et_fw-la per_fw-la gloss_n in_o ca._n cum_fw-la et_fw-la plantare_fw-la though_o woman_n be_v uncapable_a of_o the_o cure_n of_o soul_n as_o touch_v the_o actual_a exercise_v thereof_o themselves_o yet_o abbass_n and_o monial_n may_v have_v right_a and_o power_n to_o exercise_v the_o same_o by_o a_o man_n capable_a of_o that_o power_n but_o it_o be_v not_o amiss_o to_o observe_v some_o conclusion_n from_o the_o jesuit_n position_n here_o first_o that_o the_o pope_n supreme_a power_n ecclesiastical_a be_v dependent_a upon_o another_o that_o be_v upon_o peter_n for_o he_o assert_v out_o of_o bernard_n that_o not_o christ_n but_o peter_n give_v unto_o the_o pope_n the_o cure_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n second_o that_o the_o pope_n as_o peter_n successor_n neither_o have_v nor_o can_v give_v any_o temporal_a possession_n for_o so_o he_o make_v bernard_n conclude_v thus_o peter_n have_v no_o temporal_a possession_n himself_o therefore_o he_o can_v give_v no_o temporal_a possession_n to_o his_o successor_n the_o pope_n three_o that_o a_o man_n may_v give_v that_o to_o another_o which_o he_o have_v not_o himself_o for_o the_o pope_n as_o peter_n successor_n give_v temporal_a kingdom_n &_o empire_n and_o yet_o the_o pope_n as_o peter_n successor_n have_v no_o temporal_a posselsion_n much_o less_o kingdom_n and_o least_o of_o all_o empire_n out_o of_o these_o conclusion_n grow_v these_o two_o quaeres_fw-la following_z 1._o whether_o the_o pope_n in_o give_v kingdom_n distribute_v the_o vast_a part_n of_o the_o earth_n the_o indian_n east_n &_o west_n viz._n among_o the_o king_n of_o spain_n and_o portugal_n and_o in_o translate_n empire_n from_o one_o nation_n to_o another_o because_o herein_o he_o succeed_v not_o peter_n succeed_v not_o the_o god_n of_o this_o world_n who_o say_v unto_o our_o saviour_n christ_n math._n 4._o all_o these_o kingdom_n with_o the_o glory_n thereof_o i_o will_v give_v unto_o thou_o 2_o how_o the_o pope_n kingdom_n in_o italy_n be_v peter_n patrimony_n if_o no_o temporal_a possession_n belong_v to_o peter_n becan_n exam._n 198._o pag._n 198._o my_o three_o argument_n be_v this_o he_o that_o be_v subject_a to_o another_o in_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a of_o exterior_a court_n have_v not_o supreme_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a of_o exterior_a court_n but_o the_o king_n be_v subject_a to_o another_o that_o be_v the_o bishop_n who_o by_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a of_o exterior_a court_n may_v excommunicate_v he_o and_o throw_v he_o out_o of_o the_o church_n therefore_o he_o have_v not_o supreme_a power_n ecclesiastical_a of_o exterior_a court_n your_o answer_n be_v that_o so_o the_o pope_n be_v not_o primate_n of_o the_o church_n for_o he_o be_v subject_a to_o the_o priest_n to_o who_o bee_n confess_v and_o who_o may_v bind_v and_o loose_v his_o sin_n the_o primacy_n do_v not_o consist_v in_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o interior_a but_o exterior_a court_n the_o power_n of_o absolve_a from_o sin_n or_o the_o inward_a jurisdiction_n be_v give_v by_o christ_n immediate_o to_o all_o priest_n equal_o by_o force_n of_o order_n which_o jurisdiction_n be_v not_o great_a in_o the_o pope_n then_o in_o any_o other_o priest_n the_o pope_n may_v be_v subject_a to_o the_o priest_n in_o jurisdiction_n interior_a richard_n you_o err_v great_o not_o distinguish_v between_o these_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o internal_a and_o external_a court_n dr._n harris_n reply_n it_o seem_v the_o wit_n of_o this_o jesuit_n be_v much_o waste_v for_o he_o know_v not_o the_o way_n wherein_o or_o the_o place_n whereto_o he_o intend_v to_o go_v among_o we_o writer_n who_o all_o deny_v the_o king_n have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v he_o say_v there_o be_v a_o great_a jar_n because_o we_o also_o hold_v the_o king_n to_o be_v supreme_a ecclesiastical_a governor_n in_o his_o dominion_n by_o which_o medium_fw-la viz._n the_o king_n supremacy_n suppose_v to_o be_v true_a the_o jesuit_n endeavour_v to_o infer_v necessary_o that_o therefore_o the_o king_n may_v excommunicate_v but_o in_o this_o his_o three_o syllogism_n the_o jesuit_n go_v about_o to_o overthrow_v the_o suppose_a truth_n of_o the_o say_v medium_fw-la namely_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o supreme_a governor_n ecclesiastical_a and_o what_o be_v this_o to_o the_o matter_n in_o hand_n viz._n to_o prove_v a_o jar_n which_o answer_n be_v more_o sufficient_a than_o his_o fondness_n deserve_v yet_o because_o he_o imagine_v this_o syllogism_n to_o be_v invincible_a i_o will_v answer_v direct_o unto_o it_o &_o shiver_v it_o all_o to_o naught_o i_o deny_v both_o the_o mayor_n and_o minor_a proposition_n thereof_o i_o say_v the_o mayor_n be_v false_a &_o show_v it_o thus_o the_o pope_n be_v subject_a to_o other_o bishop_n who_o in_o exterior_a court_n that_o be_v in_o counsel_n have_v not_o only_o excommunicate_v whereof_o see_v sozom._n lib._n 3._o cap._n 11._o nicephor_n lib._n 17._o cap._n 26._o council_n constantinopol_n 6._o act._n 13._o but_o also_o anathematise_v he_o yet_o say_v this_o jesuit_n the_o pope_n in_o court_n exterior_a be_v supreme_a governor_n over_o all_o bishop_n to_o who_o he_o give_v and_o from_o who_o he_o take_v away_o at_o his_o pleasure_n power_n to_o excommunicate_v again_o the_o pope_n be_v subject_a to_o a_o priest_n his_o confessor_n who_o have_v power_n to_o exercise_v the_o key_n against_o the_o pope_n viz._n to_o open_a unto_o he_o heaven_n gate_n and_o to_o shut_v they_o against_o he_o to_o bind_v his_o sin_n and_o to_o loose_v they_o to_o throw_v he_o out_o of_o that_o communion_n of_o saint_n whereof_o we_o read_v in_o the_o creed_n to_o deliver_v he_o to_o satan_n and_o therefore_o to_o excommunicate_v he_o the_o jesuit_n start_v hole_n here_o be_v that_o the_o priest_n may_v bind_v the_o pope_n sin_n in_o the_o internal_a court_n but_o not_o in_o the_o external_a as_o though_o the_o court_n of_o conscience_n be_v not_o the_o high_a court_n under_o heaven_n as_o though_o that_o communion_n which_o stand_v only_o of_o saint_n indeed_o and_o all_o those_o god_n elect_n be_v not_o above_o that_o communion_n which_o consist_v of_o holy_a one_o and_o unholie_a of_o the_o elect_v and_o reprobate_v for_o as_o by_o popish_a canon_n the_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n be_v above_o the_o temporal_a so_o the_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n internal_a be_v above_o the_o external_a if_o therefore_o the_o priest_n confessor_n be_v above_o the_o pope_n who_o sin_n he_o bind_v who_o he_o deliver_v to_o satan_n who_o he_o excommunicate_v from_o that_o inward_a communion_n of_o saint_n elect_v by_o virtue_n of_o his_o inward_a jurisdiction_n why_o may_v he_o not_o much_o more_o excommunicate_v he_o from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o righteous_a and_o unrighteous_a the_o elect_a and_o reprobate_n by_o external_a jurisdiction_n which_o be_v far_o inferior_a to_o the_o other_o but_o because_o the_o jesuit_n here_o tax_v i_o for_o not_o distinguish_v between_o jurisdiction_n internal_a and_o external_a between_o the_o bind_n of_o sin_n in_o court_n exterior_a and_o interior_a i_o answer_v he_o as_o tertullian_n do_v to_o another_o heretic_n ostendat_fw-la hermogenes_n scriptum_fw-la aut_fw-la vae_fw-la illi_fw-la let_v becan_n show_v where_o this_o distinction_n be_v write_v or_o woebe_fw-la unto_o he_o if_o he_o can_v then_o let_v he_o hear_v what_o the_o church_n of_o england_n in_o her_o apology_n the_o second_o part_n chap._n 7._o divis_fw-la 5._o have_v orthodoxal_o and_o judicious_o determine_v herein_o viz._n see_v one_o manner_n of_o word_n be_v give_v to_o all_o and_o one_o only_a key_n belong_v unto_o all_o we_o say_v there_o be_v but_o one_o only_a power_n of_o all_o minister_n as_o concern_v open_v and_o shut_v so_o that_o if_o the_o priest_n by_o this_o one_o key_n shut_v out_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v bind_v his_o sin_n than_o he_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n or_o if_o with_o that_o selfsame_o
enough_o for_o a_o christian_a king_n towards_o the_o obtain_n of_o eternal_a life_n or_o as_o bellarmine_n speak_v of_o god_n eternal_a kingdom_n to_o serve_v the_o lord_n as_o a_o christian_a king_n that_o be_v by_o execute_v his_o primacy_n ecclesiastical_a as_o he_o that_o be_v custos_fw-la utriusque_fw-la tabulae_fw-la the_o grand_a or_o cause-keeper_n of_o both_o the_o table_n and_o so_o hold_v his_o new_a right_n to_o life_n eternal_a according_a to_o that_o of_o saint_n paul_n unto_o the_o same_o sense_n though_o in_o another_o case_n 1._o tim._n chap._n 2._o ver_fw-la 15._o woman_n through_o bear_v of_o child_n shall_v be_v save_v if_o they_o continue_v in_o faith_n and_o love_n and_o holiness_n with_o modesty_n so_o christian_a king_n shall_v be_v save_v by_o well_o use_v their_o primacy_n ecclesiastical_a if_o they_o continue_v in_o faith_n love_n and_o holiness_n thus_o be_v all_o these_o several_a examination_n jesuitical_a as_o potter_n shard_n shiver_v to_o nothing_o thus_o have_v we_o this_o jesuit_n acknowledge_v the_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n of_o christian_a king_n why_o then_o unless_o the_o jesuit_n have_v somewhat_o to_o say_v in_o arrest_n of_o judgement_n shall_v not_o we_o as_o we_o have_v obtain_v so_o open_o proclaim_v the_o victory_n ❧_o becans_n jar_n xiii_o question_n whether_o the_o king_n may_v constrain_v his_o subject_n to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o primacy_n or_o no_o 1._o hitherto_o have_v we_o treat_v of_o the_o jar_a and_o disagreement_n of_o our_o adversary_n about_o the_o nature_n office_n &_o origin_n of_o the_o king_n primacy_n now_o there_o remain_v a_o certain_a practical_a question_n which_o touch_v the_o conscience_n to_o the_o quick_a to_o wit_n whether_o the_o king_n may_v constrain_v or_o force_v his_o subject_n to_o swear_v that_o they_o acknowledge_v his_o kingly_a primacy_n whereof_o we_o have_v speak_v before_o or_o whether_o they_o will_v acknowledge_v the_o king_n as_o primate_n &_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n unto_o who_o as_o unto_o their_o primate_n and_o supreme_a head_n they_o will_v promise_v fidelity_n no_o less_o in_o ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a matter_n then_o in_o politic_a &_o temporal_a this_o question_n have_v two_o point_n the_o first_o whether_o the_o king_n of_o england_n do_v defacto_fw-la exact_a or_o have_v at_o any_o time_n exact_v such_o a_o oath_n of_o his_o subject_n the_o other_o be_v whether_o his_o subject_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o take_v such_o a_o oath_n if_o the_o king_n shall_v exact_v the_o same_o of_o both_o these_o point_n several_o i_o mean_v to_o speak_v a_o word_n or_o two_o the_o first_o point_n 2._o the_o first_o point_n than_o be_v whether_o the_o king_n of_o england_n do_v exact_a or_o at_o any_o time_n have_v exact_v such_o a_o oath_n of_o his_o subject_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o do_v for_o so_o write_v doctor_n sanders_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o schism_n of_o england_n laurentius_n cocchus_fw-la prio_fw-la coenobij_fw-la dancastrensis_fw-la unà_fw-la cum_fw-la tribus_fw-la monachis_fw-la &_o duobuslaicis_fw-la aegidio_fw-la horno_n &_o clement_n philpotto_n quòd_fw-la nollent_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la terrent_fw-la regis_fw-la primatum_fw-la iuratò_fw-la confiteri_fw-la exclu●i_fw-la èterris_fw-la ad_fw-la caelestem_fw-la aeterni_fw-la regis_fw-la gloriam_fw-la transmissi_fw-la sunt_fw-la laurence_n coach_n prior_n of_o the_o monastery_n of_o dancaster_n together_o with_o three_o monk_n and_o two_o layman_n giles_n horn_n and_o clement_n philpot_n for_o that_o they_o will_v not_o swear_v to_o the_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n of_o a_o tempor_n all_o king_n be_v exclude_v from_o ●arth_n be_v translate_v to_o a_o celestial_a glory_n of_o the_o eternal_a king_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o again_o proponebantur_fw-la cisnona_fw-la comitiorum_fw-la decreta_fw-la &_o iubebantur_fw-la inreinrando_fw-la affirmare_fw-la regem_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la supremum_fw-la esse_fw-la caput_fw-la the_o new_a decree_n of_o the_o parliament_n be_v propound_v unto_o they_o and_o they_o be_v command_v to_o swear_v the_o king_n to_o beesupreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n 3._o now_o that_o queen_n elizabeth_n the_o daughter_n follow_v herein_o her_o father_n k._n henry_n it_o be_v manifest_a by_o the_o former_a oath_n that_o she_o exact_v of_o her_o subject_n which_o be_v this_o ego_fw-la a._n b._n prorsus_fw-la testificor_fw-la &_o declaro_fw-la in_o conscientia_fw-la mea_fw-la reginam_fw-la esse_fw-la solam_fw-la supremam_fw-la gubernatricem_fw-la et_fw-la istius_fw-la regui_fw-la angliae_fw-la &_o aliorum_fw-la omnium_fw-la suae_fw-la ma●estaus_n dominiorum_fw-la &_o regionum_fw-la non_fw-la ninùs_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la spiritualibus_fw-la atque_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la rebusvel_n causis_fw-la quam_fw-la temporalibus_fw-la et_fw-la quòd_fw-la nemo_fw-la externus_fw-la princeps_fw-la persona_fw-la praelatus_fw-la status_fw-la vel_fw-la potentatus_fw-la aut_fw-la facto_fw-la aut_fw-la jure_fw-la habet_fw-la aliquam_fw-la iurisdictionem_fw-la potestatem_fw-la superioritatem_fw-la praeeminentiam_fw-la vel_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la ecclesiasticam_fw-la aut_fw-la spiritualem_fw-la in_o hoc_fw-la regno_fw-la ideoque_fw-la planè_fw-la renuntio_fw-la &_o repudio_fw-la omnes_fw-la forinsecas_fw-la iurisdictiones_fw-la po●es●ates_fw-la superioritates_fw-la atque_fw-la authoritates_fw-la etc._n etc._n ●_o a._n b._n doc_fw-fr very_o testify_v and_o declare_v in_o my_o conscience_n that_o the_o queen_n be_v the_o only_a supreme_a gonernesse_n as_o well_o of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o england_n as_o of_o all_o other_o her_o majesty_n dominion_n and_o country_n as_o well_o in_o all_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n &_o cause_n as_o in_o temparall_a and_o that_o no_o foreign_a prince_n person_n prelate_n state_n or_o potentate_n have_v either_o by_o fact_n or_o right_a any_o jurisaiction_n power_n superiority_n pre-eminence_n or_o authority_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a in_o this_o kingdom_n and_o therefore_o i_o do_v utter_o renounce_v and_o abandon_v all_o foreign_a jurisdiction_n power_n superiority_n and_o authority_n etc._n etc._n 4._o the_o very_a same_o also_o do_v now_o king●ames_n ●ames_z who_o bind_v his_o subject_n not_o with_o one_o oath_n alone_o but_o with_o two_o to_o wit_n of_o supremacy_n and_o allegiance_n the_o former_a oath_n of_o supremacy_n begin_v thus_o ego_fw-la a._n b._n palam_fw-la ●estor_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la conscientia_fw-la mea_fw-la declaro_fw-la quòd_fw-la maiestas_fw-la regius_fw-la unicus_fw-la est_fw-la supremus_fw-la gubernator_fw-la hu●●s_fw-la regni_fw-la omniumque_fw-la aliorum_fw-la suae_fw-la maieslatis_fw-la dominiorum_fw-la &_o territoriorum_fw-la tam_fw-la in_o omnibus_fw-la spiritualibus_fw-la sine_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la rebus_fw-la &_o causis_fw-la quàm_fw-la in_o temporalibus_fw-la et_fw-la quòd_fw-la nullus_fw-la extraneus_fw-la princeps_fw-la persona_fw-la praelatus_fw-la status_fw-la aut_fw-la potentatus_fw-la habet_fw-la aut_fw-la habere_fw-la debet_fw-la ullam_fw-la iunsdictio●en_fw-la poteslatem_fw-la superioritatem_fw-la praeeminentiam_fw-la vel_fw-la authoritatem_fw-la ecclesiasticam_fw-la sive_fw-la spiritualem_fw-la intra_fw-la hoc_fw-la regnum_fw-la etc._n etc._n ay_o a._n b._n do_v public_o testify_v &_o in_o my_o conscience_n declare_v that_o the_o king_n majesty_n be_v the_o only_a suprewe_a governor_n of_o this_o kingdom_n and_o of_o all_o other_o his_o majesty_n dominion_n and_o territory_n as_o well_o in_o all_o matter_n and_o cause_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a as_o in_o temporal_a and_o that_o no_o foreign_a prince_n person_n prelate_n state_n or_o potentate_n have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v any_o turisdiction_n power_n superiority_n preheminenci_fw-la or_o authority_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a within_o this_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n the_o late_a oath_n call_v of_o allegiance_n begin_v thus_o ego_fw-la a._n b._n verè●t_fw-la sincerè_fw-la agnosco_fw-la profiteor_fw-la testificor_fw-la &_o declaro_fw-la in_o consctentia_fw-la mea_fw-la coram_fw-la deo_fw-la &_o mundo_fw-la quòd_fw-la supremus_fw-la dominus_fw-la noster_fw-la rex_fw-la jacobus_n etc._n etc._n ay_o a._n b._n do_v true_o and_o sincere_o acknowledge_v profess_v and_o testify_v in_o my_o conscience_n before_o god_n and_o the_o world_n that_o our_o sovereign_a lord_n king_n james_n etc._n etc._n 5._o both_o these_o oath_n be_v set_v down_o at_o large_a in_o his_o majesty_n apology_n and_o in_o both_o of_o they_o his_o subject_n be_v require_v public_o and_o open_o toprofesse_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o king_n james_n be_v the_o supreme_a gonernour_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o england_n not_o only_o in_o politic_a and_o temporal_a matter_n but_o in_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a also_o and_o that_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o any_o other_o foreigner_n have_v any_o power_n or_o inrisdiction_n in_o or_o oner_o the_o church_n of_o england_n again_o the_o former_a of_o these_o oath_n be_v bring_v in_o by_o k._n henry_n the_o 8._o as_o his_o majesty_n confess_v in_o his_o apology_n in_o these_o word_n sub_fw-la henrico_n octavo_fw-la primùm_fw-la introductum_fw-la est_fw-la juramentum_fw-la primatus_fw-la sub_fw-la eoque_fw-la thomas_n morus_n &_o roffensis_n supplicio_fw-la affecti_fw-la idque_fw-la partim_fw-la ob_fw-la eam_fw-la causam_fw-la quòd_fw-la juramentum_fw-la illud_fw-la recusarent_fw-la ab_fw-la eo_fw-la deinceps_fw-la omnes_fw-la mei_fw-la praedecessores_fw-la quot_fw-la quot_fw-la sunt_fw-la hanc_fw-la religionem_fw
the_o english_a concord_n in_o answer_n to_o becane_n english_a jarre_n together_o with_o a_o reply_n to_o becan_n examen_fw-la of_o the_o english_a concord_n by_o richard_n harris_n dr._n in_o divinity_n 2._o tim._n 2.16_o stay_v profane_a and_o vain_a babble_n for_o they_o will_v increase_v unto_o more_o ungodliness_n at_o london_n print_v by_o h._n l._n for_o mat._n lownes_n and_o be_v to_o be_v sell_v in_o paul_n churchyard_n at_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o bishop_n head_n 1614_o to_o the_o king_n most_o excellent_a majesty_n james_n by_o the_o grace_n of_o of_o god_n king_n of_o great_a britain_n france_n and_o ireland_n defender_n of_o the_o true_a ancient_a catholic_n and_o apostolic_a faith_n and_o supreme_a governor_n in_o all_o cause_n &_o over_o all_o person_n ecclesiacticall_a within_o his_o dominion_n so_o ordain_v to_o be_v by_o the_o divine_a majesty_n most_o gracious_a soveragine_n that_o busy_a packhorse_n jesuit_n becan_n maintain_v what_o in_o his_o small_a power_n lie_v diametrall_a opposition_n to_o your_o majesty_n rightful_a &_o supereminet_fw-la pour_v ecclesiastical_a to_o make_v the_o same_o seem_v ludibrious_a in_o the_o eye_n of_o his_o adherent_n as_o king_n david_n dance_v before_o the_o ark_n seem_v to_o be_v in_o the_o eye_n of_o profane_a michal_n in_o his_o print_a empty_a pamphlet_n style_v dissidium_fw-la anglicanú_fw-it bring_v as_o it_o be_v upon_o the_o world_n theatre_n five_o english_a protestant_n writer_n in_o defence_n of_o your_o majesty_n say_a supremacy_n namely_o the_o most_o learned_a &_o reverend_a bishop_n of_o ely_n with_o his_o two_o chaplain_n master_n thomson_n and_o master_n burhill_n also_o master_n doctor_n tooker_n and_o my_o self_n as_o jar_v among_o ourselves_o in_o many_o and_o material_a point_n of_o the_o say_a supremacy_n and_o thereupon_o he_o conclude_v that_o your_o majesty_n have_v no_o iuct_n cause_n to_o urge_v the_o take_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o regal_a supremacy_n upon_o your_o subject_n since_o the_o defender_n thereof_o in_o writing_n can_v agree_v in_o the_o main_a real_a and_o essential_a part_n of_o it_o which_o pernicious_a project_n of_o the_o adversary_n cause_v i_o in_o my_o most_o humble_a duty_n &_o loyal_a service_n to_o your_o majesty_n eftsoon_o to_o write_v my_o book_n of_o english_a concord_n therein_o show_v and_o prove_v the_o sweet_a harmony_n whereby_o all_o the_o fore_n say_v five_o writer_n utter_v the_o rightful_a supremacy_n of_o your_o sacred_a majesty_n now_o because_o some_o of_o your_o majesty_n popish_a and_o english_a subject_n have_v turn_v the_o say_a pamphlet_n of_o becan_n out_o of_o latin_a into_o english_a thereby_o to_o cause_v that_o poisonfull_a canker_n to_o spread_v further_o and_o that_o roman_a leprosy_n to_o overrun_v the_o outward_a face_n and_o inward_a heart_n of_o english_a papist_n on_o this_o side_n and_o beyond_o the_o sea_n to_o countermine_v that_o serpentine_a plot_n viz._n to_o suppesse_fw-la or_o at_o the_o least_o to_o stay_v the_o further_a progress_n of_o that_o run_a canker_n it_o seem_v good_a unto_o your_o majesty_n to_o command_v the_o translate_n of_o my_o say_a book_n into_o english_a which_o be_v do_v according_o but_o before_o it_o can_v be_v print_v becan_n have_v write_v and_o send_v to_o the_o last_o frankfurt_n mart_n his_o examen_fw-la of_o my_o book_n of_o english_a concord_n which_o force_v i_o to_o annex_v my_o reply_n and_o refutation_n of_o his_o examen_fw-la in_o the_o interim_n in_o english_a also_o because_o the_o other_o be_v in_o english_a intend_v with_o all_o convenient_a speed_n to_o send_v the_o same_o reply_v augment_v beyond_o the_o sea_n in_o latin_a that_o this_o importune_a adversary_n may_v see_v his_o reed_n examen_fw-la shake_v down_o and_o shinered_a all_o to_o piece_n and_o also_o may_v behold_v the_o english_a concord_n full_o maintain_v and_o justify_v in_o every_o part_n and_o parcel_n of_o regal_a supremacy_n i_o humble_o confess_v unto_o your_o excellent_a majesty_n that_o it_o grieve_v i_o at_o my_o very_a hart_n to_o spend_v so_o many_o good_a hour_n in_o refute_v the_o almanack-pamphlet_n of_o this_o shallow_a and_o in_o very_a truth_n unlearned_a jesuit_n wherein_o be_v not_o to_o be_v find_v any_o learning_n read_v or_o indicious_a discourse_n fit_v a_o father-iesuit_n but_o only_o boylike_a wrangling_n about_o either_o seem_a jar_n in_o word_n or_o syllable_n or_o escape_v of_o the_o transcriber_n printer_n or_o corrector_n in_o some_o abcedary_n letter_n in_o numeral_a figure_n in_o quote_v the_o middle_a paragraph-word_n for_o the_o first_o word_n of_o the_o self_n same_o canon_n whereas_o the_o very_a express_a word_n or_o the_o very_a substantial_a matter_n according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o author_n and_o the_o purpose_n in_o hand_n be_v faithful_o set_v down_o these_o trifle_n which_o with_o his_o shameless_a calumniation_n untruth_n and_o scurrility_n make_v up_o the_o very_a bulk_n of_o his_o triobulare_a book_n though_o they_o may_v well_o have_v be_v let_v pass_v as_o thing_n of_o nought_o or_o bury_v in_o silence_n yet_o because_o wise_a solomon_n advise_v sometime_o to_o answer_v a_o fool_n in_o his_o foolishness_n lest_o my_o silence_n herein_o shall_v cause_v this_o jesuit_n to_o grow_v more_o insolent_a or_o the_o popish_a sort_n in_o their_o ungration_n and_o rebellious_a denial_n of_o this_o oath_n more_o confident_a i_o have_v make_v this_o reply_n to_o give_v he_o more_o matter_n to_o work_v upon_o it_o be_v my_o settle_a resolution_n through_o god_n assistance_n while_o i_o breath_n to_o justify_v in_o writing_n against_o this_o jesuit_n both_o the_o rightfulness_n of_o your_o majesty_n supremacy_n and_o also_o the_o uniform_a agreement_n of_o the_o say_a writer_n therein_o the_o rather_o because_o though_o this_o jesuit_n by_o his_o silly_a scribble_n bring_v shame_n and_o disgrace_n to_o the_o pope_n who_o cause_n he_o undertake_v to_o defend_v yet_o be_v think_v not_o the_o unmeet_a emissary_n of_o his_o unholiness_n for_o that_o this_o popeparasite_n with_o his_o hard_a forehead_n dare_v set_v forth_o in_o print_n any_o thing_n for_o his_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n &_o against_o your_o sacred_a majesty_n be_v it_o for_o the_o matter_n never_o so_o impious_o gross_a and_o for_o the_o manner_n never_o soimpudent_o sourrilous_a wherefore_o have_v taste_v of_o your_o highness_n most_o gracious_a patronage_n in_o my_o former_a labour_n i_o be_o embolden_v to_o present_v these_o also_o unto_o your_o royal_a view_n be_v more_o desirous_a of_o your_o may_v sole_a judgement_n to_o approve_v the_o line_n defend_v regal_a jurisdiction_n then_o of_o a_o whole_a college_n or_o council_n of_o our_o adversary_n because_o such_o be_v the_o desert_n of_o your_o royal_a mind_n and_o pen_n as_o be_v by_o sabellicus_n attribute_v to_o cicero_n pulchriùs_fw-la illi_fw-la multo_fw-la fuit_fw-la latinum_fw-la sermonem_fw-la quàm_fw-la romanum_fw-la imperium_fw-la auxisse_fw-la so_o be_v it_o more_o honour_n to_o your_o excellent_a majesty_n if_o such_o a_o prince_n be_v capable_a of_o access_n of_o honour_n that_o you_o have_v by_o write_v propagate_v the_o religion_n of_o christ_n then_o if_o by_o battle_n you_o have_v enlarge_v your_o dominion_n and_o great_a britain_n monarchy_n the_o one_o be_v the_o price_n of_o the_o death_n of_o jesus_n the_o other_o your_o most_o lawful_a patrimony_n by_o the_o death_n of_o your_o royal_a forefather_n which_o the_o lord_n grant_v you_o may_v so_o long_o enjoy_v as_o your_o own_o royal_a heart_n desire_v and_o all_o your_o love_a subject_n do_v say_v amen_n your_o majesty_n most_o humble_a and_o loyal_a subject_n richard_n harris_n a_o preface_n to_o all_o english_a papist_n who_o approve_v not_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n answer_v the_o preface_n of_o becane_n for_o as_o much_o as_o becane_n have_v discourse_v of_o a_o english_a jar_n about_o the_o supremacy_n i_o be_o willing_a to_o use_v a_o few_o word_n unto_o you_o but_o in_o no_o case_n to_o be_v troublesome_a with_o any_o tedious_a oration_n about_o two_o year_n since_o becane_n write_v two_o libel-pamphlet_n touch_v the_o king_n supremacy_n the_o one_o against_o the_o apology_n and_o monitorie_a preface_n of_o our_o most_o mighty_a and_o gracious_a sovereign_n james_n king_n of_o great_a britanne_n the_o other_o against_o a_o book_n call_v tortura_fw-la torti_n or_o rather_o against_o the_o author_n thereof_o the_o most_o reverend_a bishop_n of_o ely_n the_o smoky_a fume_n of_o which_o pamphlet_n for_o they_o contain_v no_o solid_a matter_n in_o they_o be_v dispel_v by_o dr._n tucker_n mr._n r._n tomson_n mr._n rob._n burhill_n and_o by_o hainricus_n salobrigiensis_a notwithstanding_o martin_n becane_n abide_v conceited_o obstinate_a although_o there_o be_v many_o thing_n which_o may_v have_v cool_v his_o heat_n and_o take_v from_o he_o all_o lust_n of_o further_a brawl_a and_o principal_o these_o first_o the_o iniquity_n of_o his_o cause_n then_o your_o indifferent_a equity_n last_o the_o manifold_a
few_o question_n follow_v i._o whether_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v any_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n or_o no_o ii_o whether_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o king_n be_v ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a iii_o whether_o the_o king_n by_o this_o primacy_n may_v be_v call_v the_o primate_n of_o the_o church_n four_o whether_o by_o virtue_n of_o the_o same_o primacy_n the_o king_n may_v be_v call_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n v._o whether_o this_o primacy_n consist_v in_o any_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a vi_o whether_o the_o king_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o primacy_n can_v assemble_v or_o call_v together_o counsel_n and_o sit_v as_o precedent_n therein_o vii_o whether_o he_o can_v make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n viii_o whether_o he_o can_v dispose_v of_o ecclesiastical_a live_n or_o benefice_n ix_o whether_o he_o can_v create_v and_o depose_v bishop_n x._o whether_o he_o can_v excommunicate_v the_o obstinate_a xi_o whether_o he_o can_v be_v judge_n and_o determine_v of_o controversy_n xii_o from_o whence_o have_v the_o king_n this_o his_o primacy_n xiii_o whether_o he_o can_v force_v his_o subject_n to_o take_v the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n in_o these_o question_n do_v our_o adversary_n extreme_o differ_v and_o disagree_v but_o especial_o these_o m._n doctor_n andrew_n in_o his_o tortura_fw-la torti_n m._n william_n tooker_n deane_n of_o lichefield_n in_o his_o combat_n or_o single_a fight_n with_o martin_n bucane_n m._n richard_n tomson_n in_o his_o reproof_n of_o the_o refutation_n of_o tortura_fw-la torti_n m._n robert_n burhill_n in_o his_o defence_n of_o tortura_fw-la torti_n and_o m._n henry_n salclebridge_n in_o his_o refutation_n of_o becane_n his_o examen_fw-la beside_o these_o as_o opposite_a unto_o they_o i_o will_v also_o cite_v doctor_n sanders_n in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o schism_n of_o england_n genebard_v in_o his_o chronology_n polydore_n virgil_n in_o his_o history_n of_o england_n jacobus_n thuanus_n of_o aust_n in_o the_o history_n of_o his_o time_n john_n caluin_n in_o his_o commentary_n upon_o the_o prophet_n amos_n and_o other_o english_a concord_n the_o regal_a primacy_n in_o the_o church_n of_o england_n be_v much_o more_o ancient_a than_o the_o popish_a primacy_n in_o the_o roman_a church_n the_o regal_a primacy_n have_v his_o beginning_n from_o the_o 6_o the_o daniel_n chap._n 7._o v._n 6_o ancient_n of_o day_n under_o the_o most_o ancient_a patriarch_n it_o flourish_v magnifical_o under_o the_o orthodoxal_a king_n israeliticall_a and_o evangelicall_a and_o now_o in_o england_n it_o flourish_v most_o of_o all_o under_o king_n james_n sound_o sound_v upon_o the_o rock_n and_o build_v upon_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n permanent_a for_o ever_o so_o that_o by_o the_o fall_n of_o reins_n the_o come_n of_o flood_n and_o the_o wine-blast_n of_o any_o jesuit_n whatsoever_o it_o can_v be_v so_o much_o as_o move_v much_o less_o remoove_v and_o least_o of_o all_o rent_n and_o tear_v in_o piece_n but_o of_o the_o popish_a primacy_n right_o say_v christ_n in_o the_o gospel_n every_o kingdom_n divide_v in_o itself_o shall_v be_v desolate_a now_o what_o and_o how_o great_a their_o jar_n and_o discord_n be_v i_o be_o to_o show_v in_o handle_v these_o few_o question_n follow_v english_a concord_n becane_n in_o his_o book_n of_o english_a discord_n and_o in_o his_o first_o question_n demand_v whether_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v any_o primacy_n or_o supremacy_n in_o the_o church_n and_o i_o in_o my_o book_n of_o english_a concord_n demand_v whether_o the_o pope_n have_v any_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n consider_v that_o saint_n cyprian_n assert_v that_o peter_n do_v never_o challenge_v or_o assume_v any_o such_o thing_n 3_o epist_n ad_fw-la quintum_fw-la 71._o sect_n 3_o as_o to_o say_v that_o he_o hold_v the_o primacy_n and_o that_o chrysostome_n dogmatical_o write_v thus_o whosoever_o desire_v or_o affect_v the_o primacy_n in_o earth_n as_o all_o pope_n do_v shall_v find_v confusion_n in_o heaven_n matth._n homil._n 35_o in_o matth._n whereunto_o the_o jesuite_n in_o his_o late_a book_n entitle_v examen_fw-la concordiae_fw-la anglicanae_n the_o examination_n of_o the_o english_a concord_n answer_v or_o object_v thus_o becan_n exam._n that_o they_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o chrysostome_n 92_o pag._n 92_o but_o of_o some_o other_o author_n join_v with_o he_o 2._o that_o these_o word_n be_v against_o our_o king_n desire_v supremacy_n in_o earth_n 3._o that_o the_o author_n speak_v promiscuous_o of_o both_o the_o primaces_n secular_a and_o ecclesiastical_a 4._o but_o distinguish_v between_o the_o desire_n and_o obtain_v of_o the_o primacy_n refer_v the_o one_o to_o vanity_n and_o the_o other_o to_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n dr._n harris_n reply_n 1_o i_o do_v commiserate_v the_o silly_a ignorance_n of_o this_o jesuite_n becane_n who_o know_v not_o that_o these_o very_a word_n aforesaid_a be_v not_o only_o canonize_v but_o also_o express_o father_v upon_o chrysostome_n in_o the_o pope_n canon_n law_n which_o the_o jesuite_n dare_v not_o affront_v multi_fw-la dist_n 40._o ca._n multi_fw-la the_o word_n of_o the_o canon_n be_v these_o also_o john_n chrysostome_n not_o every_o one_o be_v a_o true_a priest_n which_o be_v name_v a_o priest_n many_o priest_n and_o few_o priest_n many_o in_o name_n but_o few_o in_o work_n take_v heed_n therefore_o brethren_n how_o you_o sit_v upon_o the_o chair_n because_o the_o chair_n do_v not_o make_v the_o priest_n but_o the_o priest_n the_o chair_n etc._n etc._n the_o same_o chrysostome_n whosoever_o shall_v desire_v primacy_n in_o earth_n shall_v find_v confusion_n in_o heaven_n neither_o shall_v he_o be_v number_v among_o the_o servant_n of_o christ_n qui_fw-fr de_fw-fr primatu_fw-la tractaverit_fw-la who_o handle_v or_o ambitious_o speak_v of_o or_o challenge_v primacy_n ecclesiasticis_fw-la de_fw-fr scriptor_n ecclesiasticis_fw-la and_o according_a to_o that_o canon_n the_o most_o profound_a and_o famous_o renown_a canonist_n even_o by_o bellarmine_n in_o his_o late_a book_n to_o wit_n henry_n cardinal_n hostiensis_n upon_o the_o 15._o chapter_n of_o penitency_n and_o remission_n cap._n cui_fw-la papa_n ascribe_v these_o word_n unto_o chrysostome_n as_o to_o the_o author_n of_o they_o thus_o and_o so_o in_o the_o penitential_a court_n the_o pope_n be_v make_v less_o and_o his_o confessor_n great_a and_o this_o chrysostome_n insinuate_v dist_n 40._o multi_fw-la wherefore_o the_o jesuite_n may_v take_v from_o i_o thus_o clear_v this_o falsity_n unto_o himself_o or_o else_o he_o must_v return_v it_o over_o to_o the_o authority_n of_o their_o apostatical_a church_n to_o their_o authentic_a and_o ordinary_a gloss_n and_o explanation_n of_o the_o gospel_n to_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n to_o their_o chief_a canonist_n and_o divine_n for_o in_o the_o writing_n of_o all_o those_o he_o may_v find_v sentence_n write_v in_o that_o work_n call_v the_o imperfect_a work_n allege_v as_o out_o of_o chrysostom_n 2._o by_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o foresay_a canon_n it_o be_v manifest_a that_o the_o word_n of_o chrysostom_n be_v by_o their_o canon_n law_n refer_v unto_o priest_n and_o priest_n only_o who_o sit_v upon_o the_o chair_n in_o express_a term_n often_o repeat_v whereby_o it_o appear_v what_o a_o silly_a and_o unmannerly_a sophister_n this_o jesuite_n be_v who_o thence_o frame_v his_o argument_n against_o our_o king_n draw_v thus_o into_o form_n syllogistical_a as_o indeed_o from_o thence_o it_o can_v be_v draw_v no_o otherwise_o what_o priest_n soever_o desire_v primacy_n in_o earth_n shall_v find_v confusion_n in_o heaven_n the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v a_o priest_n desire_v primacy_n in_o earth_n therefore_o he_o shall_v find_v confusion_n in_o heaven_n be_v this_o jesuite_n in_o our_o university_n school_n he_o will_v be_v hiss_v out_o as_o a_o absurd_a dunce_n for_o argue_v our_o gracious_a king_n be_v no_o priest_n but_o detest_v their_o priest_n and_o priesthood_n as_o antichristian_a he_o be_v by_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n the_o high_a and_o potent_a monarch_n of_o great_a britanne_n france_n and_o ireland_n and_o under_o christ_n make_v of_o god_n without_o any_o ambitious_a desire_n of_o his_o primate_n or_o supreme_a governor_n over_o all_o person_n and_o in_o all_o cause_n ecclesiasticallor_n temporal_a within_o his_o dominion_n maugre_o the_o beard_n of_o the_o pope_n and_o all_o his_o shaveling_n but_o if_o the_o jesuite_n will_v right_o assume_v out_o of_o the_o mayor_n proposition_n set_v down_o in_o the_o say_a canon_n law_n he_o must_v take_v the_o triple_a crown_n of_o primacy_n from_o the_o pope_n head_n and_o wrap_v it_o up_o in_o the_o dust_n of_o confusion_n thus_o what_o priest_n soever_o though_o it_o be_v peter_n himself_o do_v challenge_v or_o ambitious_o desire_v primacy_n in_o earth_n shall_v find_v confusion_n in_o heaven_n but_o the_o pope_n of_o rome_n have_v and_o now_o most_o of_o all_o do_v challenge_v
mislike_v the_o one_o for_o vanity_n and_o approve_v the_o other_o as_o a_o good_a thing_n give_v by_o god_n whereas_o the_o express_a word_n of_o chrysostome_n be_v clean_o contrary_a thus_o nune_n scimus_fw-la etc._n etc._n now_o we_o know_v that_o a_o good_a work_n be_v one_o thing_n and_o the_o primacy_n of_o honour_n be_v another_o thing_n and_o that_o it_o be_v good_a to_o desire_v a_o good_a thing_n but_o to_o covet_v the_o primacy_n of_o honour_n be_v vanity_n to_o shut_v up_o this_o point_n the_o christian_a reader_n may_v here_o understand_v that_o the_o pope_n even_o by_o the_o virtue_n of_o this_o testimony_n of_o chrysostome_n set_v down_o in_o and_o authorize_v by_o the_o canon_n law_n be_v incapable_a of_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n for_o if_o he_o be_v no_o priest_n indeed_o he_o can_v be_v no_o ecclesiastical_a primate_n indeed_o but_o by_o this_o canon_n indeed_o he_o be_v no_o priest_n because_o he_o be_v no_o priest_n opere_fw-la in_o priestly_a work_n that_o be_v as_o s._n paul_n expound_v it_o to_o preach_v the_o word_n in_o season_n 5.14_o 2._o tim._n 4.2_o 1._o pet._n 5.2_o heb._n 5.14_o out_o of_o season_n etc._n etc._n or_o as_o saint_n peter_n explain_v it_o to_o feed_v christ_n flock_n with_o the_o sincere_a milk_n or_o strong_a meat_n of_o the_o word_n or_o as_o chrysostome_n here_o describe_v it_o to_o serve_v his_o inferior_n by_o minister_a unto_o they_o all_o that_o he_o have_v receive_v from_o christ_n ready_a not_o only_o to_o neglect_v his_o own_o profit_n to_o procure_v they_o but_o also_o if_o need_n be_v to_o lay_v down_o his_o life_n for_o they_o the_o pope_n therefore_o be_v less_o in_o nothing_o then_o in_o this_o work_n be_v by_o the_o express_a word_n of_o this_o canon_n nothing_o less_o than_o a_o priest_n indeed_o and_o by_o necessary_a inevitable_a consequence_n nothing_o less_o than_o ecclesiastical_a primate_n indeed_o here_o be_v now_o high_a time_n for_o this_o jesuite_n to_o lay-und_a his_o shoulder_n for_o support_v of_o the_o totter_a primacy_n of_o his_o pope_n very_o sore_o shake_v by_o this_o canon_n law-shot_a and_o ready_a to_o fall_v down_o into_o the_o dust_n wherein_o pitiful_a be_v the_o pope_n case_n who_o in_o this_o conflict_n for_o his_o defendor_n bath_n so_o silly_a a_o weakling_n and_o so_o ignorant_a a_o jesuite_n as_o this_o becane_n be_v and_o hereafter_o will_v more_o and_o more_o appear_v to_o be_v english_a concord_n becane_n in_o his_o book_n of_o jar_n &_o in_o his_o second_o question_n demand_v whether_o that_o primacy_n of_o the_o king_n be_v ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a and_o i_o in_o my_o book_n of_o concord_n 4._o page_n 4._o and_o in_o my_o second_o question_n demand_v whether_o that_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n be_v secular_a and_o temporal_a because_o on_o the_o one_o side_n the_o pope_n lucifer-like_a assert_v all_o power_n to_o be_v give_v unto_o he_o as_o well_o in_o heaven_n as_o in_o earth_n which_o power_n pope_n boniface_n the_o eightth_v go_v about_o to_o put_v in_o practice_n when_o he_o endeavour_v to_o strike_v a_o terror_n into_o king_n prince_n nation_n and_o people_n on_o the_o earth_n rather_o then_o to_o plans_n religion_n in_o they_o and_o on_o the_o other_o side_n chrysostome_n say_v they_o who_o believe_v not_o the_o judgement_n of_o god_n nor_o fear_v it_o abuse_v their_o primacy_n secular_o turn_v it_o into_o the_o secular_a and_o christ_n say_v first_o unto_o peter_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n not_o of_o earth_n and_o then_o of_o himself_o my_o kingdom_n that_o be_v my_o primacy_n which_o to_o the_o pope_n be_v in_o stead_n of_o his_o kingdom_n be_v not_o of_o this_o world_n 18.36_o joh_n 18.36_o if_o it_o be_v of_o this_o world_n my_o servant_n will_v sure_o fight_v that_o i_o shall_v not_o be_v deliver_v to_o the_o jew_n and_o this_o say_v diametrall_a opposition_n betwixt_o the_o primacy_n of_o christ_n and_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope-antichrist_n cause_v pasquil_n to_o write_v in_o verse_n no_o less_o true_o then_o eloquent_o thus_o christus_fw-la regna_fw-la fugit_fw-la sed_fw-la vi_fw-la papa_n subingat_fw-la urbes_fw-la spinosam_fw-la christus_fw-la triplicem_fw-la gerit_fw-la ille_fw-la coronam_fw-la abluit_fw-la ille_fw-la pedes_fw-la reges_fw-la his_fw-la of_o cula_fw-la praebent_fw-la pavit_fw-la oves_fw-la christus_fw-la petit_fw-fr hic_fw-la regna_fw-la omne_fw-la mundi_fw-la pace_n venit_fw-la christus_fw-la venit_fw-la hic_fw-la radiantibus_fw-la armis_fw-la christ_n worldly_a kingdom_n offer_v do_v eschew_v the_o pope_n by_o force_n seek_v kingdom_n to_o subdue_v a_o crown_n of_o thorne_n our_o saviour_n christ_n do_v bear_v the_o pope_n a_o triple_a crown_n of_o gold_n do_v wear_v christ_n wash_v the_o foot_n of_o his_o disciple_n all_o but_o all_o must_v kiss_v the_o pope_n foot_n great_a and_o small_a christ_n feed_v his_o sheep_n and_o lamb_n most_o careful_o the_o pope_n to_o worldly_a kingdom_n cast_v his_o eye_n christ_n to_o his_o own_o both_o mild_a and_o meek_a do_v come_v the_o pope_n with_o arm_n the_o world_n do_v overun_v here_o be_v a_o matter_n very_o dangerous_a to_o the_o pope_n primacy_n which_o this_o shallow_a jesuite_n not_o dare_v to_o deny_v and_o yet_o not_o able_a to_o answer_v unto_o it_o leave_v it_o as_o it_o be_v the_o body_n fly_v only_o upon_o the_o shadow_n that_o be_v the_o citation_n as_o it_o follow_v becan_n exam._n ovs_fw-fr of_o gratian_n 92._o page_n 92._o dist_n 9_o cap._n innocen_n you_o 〈◊〉_d the_o pope_n assert_v all_o power_n to_o be_v give_v to_o he_o as_o well_o in_o heaven_n as_o in_o earth_n but_o false_o for_o in_o dist_n 9_o there_o be_v no_o such_o canon_n to_o be_v find_v yea_o run_v over_o all_o the_o distinction_n that_o be_v in_o gratian_n yet_o you_o shall_v not_o find_v it_o indeed_o there_o be_v such_o a_o canon_n in_o the_o second_o part_n of_o the_o decree_n 22._o question_n 4._o which_o begin_v thus_o innocens_fw-la but_o there_o it_o no_o mention_n of_o those_o word_n which_o be_v cite_v by_o you_o dr._n harris_n reply_n be_v this_o beseem_v the_o gravity_n of_o jesuitical_a fatherhood_n so_o childish_o to_o snatch_v after_o fly_n that_o be_v escape_n in_o citation_n either_o of_o the_o transcriber_n or_o composer_n or_o corrector_n and_o sometime_o peradventure_o of_o the_o author_n himself_o see_v those_o escape_n be_v so_o frequent_a in_o most_o book_n print_v the_o gloss_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n be_v so_o accurate_o and_o judicious_o write_v that_o the_o most_o learned_a canonist_n circ_n it_o often_o for_o good_a canon_n law_n as_o they_o do_v the_o very_a text_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n and_o yet_o the_o say_a accurate_a gloss_n fail_v often_o in_o the_o citation_n which_o it_o use_v whereof_o these_o two_o escape_n may_v serve_v for_o a_o taste_n viz._n dist_n 81._o ca._n si_fw-mi qui_fw-fr verb._n emendent_fw-la the_o gloss_n cit_v dist._n 22._o ca._n nullus_fw-la and_o yet_o in_o that_o distinction_n there_o be_v no_o such_o chapter_n to_o be_v find_v again_o in_o dist._n 96._o ca._n si_fw-mi imperator_fw-la verb._n definimus_fw-la the_o gloss_n cit_v cause_o 20._o quest_n 3._o ca._n quasitum_fw-la and_o yet_o there_o be_v no_o such_o chapter_n or_o canon_n to_o be_v find_v in_o that_o three_o question_n nor_o in_o that_o twenty_o cause_n if_o this_o jesuite_n have_v write_v against_o the_o author_n of_o that_o learned_a gloss_n he_o will_v have_v strew_v upon_o they_o as_o he_o have_v do_v upon_o i_o in_o like_a case_n these_o his_o rhetorical_a flower_n or_o rather_o boyish_a scurrility_n viz_o you_o cite_v the_o canon_n false_o you_o have_v not_o read_v the_o canon_n you_o understand_v nothing_o how_o oft_o shall_v i_o warn_v you_o to_o cite_v true_o it_o irk_v i_o to_o warn_v you_o so_o often_o i_o see_v i_o do_v but_o lose_v my_o my_o labour_n in_o desire_v you_o to_o cite_v true_o since_o i_o can_v obtain_v nothing_o etc._n etc._n in_o page_n 8._o of_o my_o english_a concord_n i_o cite_v jewel_n his_o apology_n part_n 4._o cap._n 21._o dinis_n 7._o collect_v certain_a reason_n to_o prove_v that_o which_o i_o there_o allege_v jewel_n for_o proof_n of_o his_o collection_n cite_v first_o 9_o q._n 3._o neque_fw-la ab_fw-la augusto_fw-la second_o dist._n 40._o si_fw-mi papa_n three_o dist._n 19_o si_fw-mi romanorum_fw-la for_o my_o part_n the_o authority_n and_o most_o profound_a learning_n of_o that_o reverend_a father_n breed_v such_o a_o reverence_n in_o i_o towards_o he_o that_o i_o will_v not_o so_o much_o as_o examine_v the_o say_a citation_n but_o set_v they_o down_o as_o i_o find_v they_o write_v in_o his_o book_n now_o the_o jesuite_n in_o his_o examination_n of_o the_o say_a citation_n find_v some_o small_a slip_n in_o some_o of_o they_o bestow_v upon_o the_o bishop_n through_z or_o by_o my_o side_n these_o scurrile_a and_o disgraceful_a flower_n
matter_n ridiculous_o because_o when_o as_o in_o the_o sixth_o of_o the_o decretall_n be_v find_v these_o word_n extravag_n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la de_fw-la verborum_fw-la significatione_n you_o out_o of_o mere_a ignorance_n and_o sluggishness_n set_v down_o these_o word_n extravag_n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la page_n 22._o what_o be_v john_n and_o page_n all_o one_o with_o you_o true_o child_n can_v be_v more_o foolish_a in_o cite_v then_o thus_o unless_o you_o profit_v better_o the_o doctor_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n will_v never_o admit_v you_o to_o the_o degree_n of_o a_o bachelor_n dr._n harris_n reply_n excuse_v i_o christian_n reader_n utter_v the_o truth_n of_o this_o scornful_a jesuite_n in_o more_o tart_a manner_n here_o and_o there_o than_o otherwise_o be_v usual_a with_o i_o or_o fit_v my_o disposition_n if_o ever_o there_o be_v or_o be_v a_o ignorant_a slug_n trifle_v lie_n frivolous_a boyish_a lie_n scurrilous_a &_o a_o lie_a forsooth_o father_n jesuite_n this_o becane_n be_v one_o &_o among_o such_o may_v bear_v the_o bell_n as_o i_o will_v make_v it_o appear_v before_o i_o dismiss_v he_o his_o boyish_a scurrility_n be_v two_o in_o the_o former_a he_o ask_v whether_o john_n and_o page_n be_v all_o one_o with_o i_o a_o question_n fit_a to_o be_v make_v by_o a_o petite_fw-fr schoolboy_n to_o his_o fellow_n then_o by_o a_o father_n jesuite_n to_o a_o ancient_a divine_a in_o the_o second_o he_o will_v cutoff_a all_o my_o hope_n to_o attain_v the_o degree_n of_o bachelor_n the_o jesuite_n may_v know_v that_o i_o be_o a_o doctor_n in_o divinity_n of_o 19_o year_n stand_v it_o may_v be_v as_o ancient_a doctor_n as_o himself_o howsoever_o that_o i_o dare_v bold_o aver_v this_o that_o becane_n in_o comparison_n of_o doctor_n harris_n be_v in_o manner_n but_o a_o abecedary_n scholar_n in_o the_o variety_n of_o all_o good_a literature_n divine_a and_o humane_a in_o all_o the_o liberal_a science_n and_o in_o all_o the_o learned_a tongue_n as_o he_o shall_v find_v to_o his_o shame_n if_o therein_o he_o dare_v grapple_v with_o i_o i_o must_v confess_v and_o say_v with_o saint_n paul_n i_o be_v a_o fool_n to_o boast_v myself_o but_o the_o scurrilous_a disgrace_n of_o this_o silly_a jesuite_n have_v enforce_v i_o as_o his_o scurrility_n so_o his_o lie_n be_v also_o two_o the_o former_a that_o i_o cite_v out_o of_o the_o chapter_n cuminter_n nonnullos_fw-la pag._n 22._o whereas_o in_o my_o paper_n book_n it_o be_v cite_v thus_o in_o short_a extravag_n 22._o ca._n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la nonnullos_fw-la but_o the_o transcriber_n corrector_n or_o compositor_n put-in_a page_n and_o be_v not_o this_o a_o boyish_a feather_n for_o the_o boyish_a father-iesuite_n to_o play_v withal_o as_o though_o such_o oversight_n in_o print_v be_v not_o usual_a this_o jesuite_n himself_o exam._n pag._n 98._o will_v have_v a_o escape_n of_o far_o great_a moment_n to_o pass_v in_o the_o print_a book_n of_o tertullian_n against_o praxeas_n his_o second_o untruth_n be_v that_o i_o cite_v it_o so_o false_o not_o of_o oversight_n but_o of_o mere_a ignorance_n and_o dulness_n alas_o for_o this_o fee_o ignorant_a and_o here_o impudent_o lie_v jesuite_n unto_o who_o upon_o pawn_n of_o all_o my_o book_n i_o will_v undertake_v and_o perform_v it_o to_o read_v lecture_n out_o of_o the_o canon_n law_n in_o the_o study_n whereof_o i_o have_v spend_v more_o week_n yea_o month_n than_o this_o jesuite_n have_v bestow_v hour_n his_o extreme_a ignorance_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n be_v make_v here_o apparent_a in_o these_o 3_o point_n follow_v first_o in_o that_o he_o confound_v the_o 6._o book_n of_o the_o decretal_n with_o the_o extravagant_n whereas_o they_o be_v distinct_a part_n of_o the_o canon_n law_n which_o law_n be_v divide_v into_o these_o 6._o general_a part_n 1._o the_o decree_n gather_v by_o gratian._n 2._o the_o decretal_n compile_v by_o gregory_n 9_o 3._o the_o sixth_o of_o the_o decretal_n make_v by_o boniface_n 8._o 4._o the_o clementines_n by_o pope_n clement_n the_o fist_n 5._o the_o extravagant_n of_o john_n 22._o 6._o the_o extravagant_n common_a make_v by_o diverse_a roman_a bishop_n after_o the_o sixth_o of_o the_o decretal_n the_o second_o point_n of_o his_o ignorance_n be_v in_o confound_v cap._n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la with_o cap._n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la nonnullos_fw-la viz._n as_o like_a as_o a_o apple_n be_v to_o a_o oyster_n the_o three_o point_n who_o in_o his_o ignorance_n be_v apparent_a be_v in_o cite_v thus_o extravag_n cum_fw-la inter_fw-la joan._n 22._o deverborum_fw-la significatione_n when_o as_o the_o canon_n or_o chap_v cum_fw-la inter_fw-la be_v to_o be_v find_v neither_o in_o that_o title_n deverborum_fw-la significatione_n nor_o in_o all_o the_o extravagant_n of_o joan._n 22._o now_o therefore_o the_o jesuit_n be_v to_o answer_v i_o to_o those_o fine_a question_n touch_v the_o three_o point_n of_o his_o very_a grosle_n ignorance_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n here_o manifest_v 1_o whether_o the_o decretall_n &_o extravagant_n be_v all_o one_o with_o he_o 2_o whether_o boniface_n and_o john_n be_v all_o one_o with_o he_o 3_o whether_o 8._o and_o 22._o be_v all_o one_o 4_o whether_o cap._n inter._n and_o cap._n inter_fw-la nonnullos_fw-la be_v all_o one_o 5_o whether_o a_o chapter_n of_o a_o title_n extant_a and_o a_o chapter_n of_o the_o same_o title_n not_o extant_a be_v all_o one_o with_o he_o and_o then_o let_v the_o indifferent_a readr_n judge_v whether_o any_o child_n can_v be_v more_o foolish_a in_o cite_v than_o he_o and_o how_o undeserued_o he_o obtain_v his_o degree_n of_o doctorship_n the_o truth_n be_v that_o place_n viz._n extravag_n joan._n 22._o cap._n inter_fw-la nonnullos_fw-la in_o gloss_n be_v cite_v by_o i_o to_o show_v that_o king_n receive_v their_o power_n none_o simple_o of_o the_o pope_n but_o more_o than_o so_o viz._n of_o the_o romish_a bishop_n as_o of_o their_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n the_o jesuit_n eudaemon_n joannes_n write_v in_o defence_n of_o the_o jesuit-traytor_n garnet_n say_v he_o can_v not_o find_v in_o any_o print_a book_n of_o extra_n joan._n 22._o those_o word_n our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n yet_o afterward_o find_v those_o very_a word_n he_o ingenuous_o confess_v the_o same_o i_o know_v not_o neither_o do_v i_o much_o care_n whether_o becane_n have_v like_o ingenuity_n in_o he_o but_o sure_o i_o be_o these_o very_a word_n be_v in_o that_o gloss_n 1513._o print_a in_o folio_n at_o paris_n auno_n 1513._o credere_fw-la dominum_fw-la deum_fw-la nostrum_fw-la papam_fw-la conditorem_fw-la dicti_fw-la decreti_fw-la non_fw-la potuisse_fw-la statuere_fw-la proat_n statuit_fw-la hareticum_fw-la censeretur_fw-la to_o believe_v that_o our_o lord_n god_n the_o popo_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o this_o pretty_a heathenish_a blaspnemie_n the_o heathen_a call_v their_o emperor_n our_o lord_n god_n domitian_n the_o papist_n call_v their_o primar_n our_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n english_a concord_n becane_n in_o his_o jar_n and_o sixth_o question_n demand_v whether_o the_o king_n by_o his_o primacy_n may_v call_v counsel_n and_o presede_v in_o they_o and_o i_o in_o my_o sixth_o question_n demand_v whether_o the_o pope_n by_o his_o primacy_n may_v call_v counsel_n and_o prese_n de_fw-fr in_o they_o i_o instance_a in_o two_o general_a counsel_n the_o one_o of_o constance_n wherein_o three_o pope_n john_n 24._o gregory_n 12._o and_o benedict_n 13._o be_v depose_v the_o other_o of_o basil_n in_o which_o pope_n eugen._n 4._o be_v deprive_v of_o his_o popedom_n and_o another_o choose_v in_o his_o room_n but_o this_o the_o jesuit_n silent_o pass_v over_o though_o it_o may_v happy_o rend_v the_o pope_n heartstring_n in-sund_a english_a concord_n becane_n in_o his_o jar_n and_o 7_o question_n demand_v whether_o the_o king_n can_v make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o i_o in_o my_o concord_n &_o 7_o question_n demand_n whether_o the_o pope_n can_v make_v law_n ecclesiastical_a &_o disannul_v law_n temporal_a herein_o i_o produce_v 4_o ecclesiastical_a law_n against_o the_o pope_n and_o his_o primacy_n the_o first_o primae_fw-la dist_n 99_o ca._n primae_fw-la that_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o sea_n or_o seat_n be_v not_o call_v prince_n of_o priest_n or_o high_a priest_n or_o any_o such_o like_a but_o only_o the_o bishop_n of_o the_o first_o sea_n neither_o let_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n himself_o be_v call_v vnivers_n all_o bishop_n the_o second_o ●2_n cyprian_n in_o conc●lio_n carthagi_n council_n constantin_n 6._o cap._n 36._o council_n afric_n ca_fw-mi ●2_n that_o no_o bishop_n shall_v make_v himself_o bishop_n of_o bishop_n or_o papa_n that_o be_v pater_fw-la patrum_fw-la the_o three_o that_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n shall_v have_v equal_a authority_n with_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n the_o four_o that_o they_o shall_v not_o be_v receive_v to_o the_o communion_n of_o any_o within_o africa_n who_o hold_v appeal_v lawful_a to_o any_o judgement_n beyond_o
of_o the_o thing_n itself_o dr._n harris_n reply_n i_o do_v not_o say_v our_o writer_n do_v strive_v about_o the_o namer_n but_o i_o ask_v the_o jesuit_n why_o he_o will_v brawl_v about_o the_o name_n when_o the_o thing_n itself_o be_v full_o agree_v upon_o here_o then_o in_o the_o begin_n of_o this_o jesuit_n examination_n we_o have_v he_o take_v in_o a_o gross_a untruth_n for_o in_o my_o english_a concord_n chap._n 1._o i_o prove_v a_o uniform_a consent_n of_o all_o not_o only_o in_o the_o matter_n that_o be_v the_o king_n supreme_a government_n over_o all_o person_n and_o in_o all_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a or_o civil_a within_o his_o dominion_n but_o also_o in_o the_o very_a english_a name_n thereof_o to_o weet_v supremacy_n unto_o which_o self_n same_o thing_n and_o self_n same_o name_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n all_o our_o protestant_a english_a writer_n have_v swear_v and_o in_o our_o public_a prayer_n in_o pulpit_n we_o solemn_o profess_v our_o allowance_n thereof_o and_o our_o concord_n therein_o as_o be_v our_o king_n most_o just_a title_n as_o for_o the_o latin_a name_n primatus_fw-la into_o the_o which_o the_o english_a word_n supremacy_n be_v translate_v we_o all_o agree_v therein_o also_o for_o becane_n question_v 12._o page_n 43_o bring_v in_o mr._n thomson_n call_v the_o king_n supremacy_n in_o latin_a primatum_fw-la and_o the_o king_n in_o respect_n thereof_o primatem_fw-la how_o hard_o then_o be_v this_o jesuite_n forehead_n affirm_v that_o i_o grant_v discord_n in_o the_o name_n to_o be_v among_o we_o indeed_o mr._n thomson_n in_o regard_n of_o the_o papist_n who_o understand_v no_o primacy_n but_o sacerdotal_a that_o be_v episcopal_a for_o by_o their_o canon_n law_n all_o patriarch_n be_v primate_fw-la and_o all_o primate_fw-la patriarch_n &_o so_o all_o primate_fw-la sacerdotal_a clamour_n that_o we_o ascribe_v primatum_fw-la primacy_n to_o our_o king_n yield_v he_o jurisdiction_n sacerdotal_a that_o be_v episcopal_a to_o reform_v their_o misconceit_n therein_o wish_v there_o be_v make_v some_o latin_a word_n as_o suprematus_fw-la or_o the_o like_a to_o express_v full_o our_o english_a word_n supremacy_n thereby_o to_o cut_v off_o all_o popish_a and_o childish_a cavil_n and_o to_o let_v they_o understand_v that_o we_o by_o primacy_n after_o the_o latin_a word_n as_o it_o be_v now_o translate_v or_o supreme_a government_n of_o the_o church_n call_v in_o our_o english_a tongue_n supremacy_n mean_v not_o ecclesiastical_a supreme_a government_n sacerdotal_a or_o episcopal_a but_o only_o regal_a in_o england_n our_o two_o archishop_n be_v call_v primate_fw-la as_o be_v superior_a governor_n sacerdotal_a over_o all_o the_o bishop_n and_o other_o inferior_a clergy_n man_n within_o their_o archbishopriks_n in_o cause_n ecclesiastical_a but_o because_o our_o king_n be_v supreme_a governor_n even_o over_o those_o archbishop_n and_o all_o other_o person_n ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a and_o in_o all_o cause_n temporal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a within_o his_o dominion_n we_o call_v in_o english_a that_o his_o supreme_a government_n not_o primacy_n but_o supremacy_n as_o if_o it_o be_v supre-primacy_n or_o above_o primacy_n therefore_o i_o have_v just_a cause_n to_o ask_v the_o jesuite_n why_o his_o frivolous_a fatherhood_n will_v contend_v about_o name_n when_o there_o be_v and_o be_v so_o full_a agreement_n in_o the_o very_a thing_n itself_o in_o regard_v whereof_o s._n paul_n depaint_v this_o becane_n as_o he_o show_v himself_o here_o to_o be_v in_o his_o orient_a colour_n thus_o 6.4_o 1._o tim._n 6.4_o he_o be_v puff_v up_o and_o know_v nothing_o but_o dote_v about_o question_n and_o strife_n of_o word_n whereof_o come_v envy_n strife_n rail_v and_o evil_a surmise_v every_o word_n fall_v so_o pat_o upon_o the_o jesuite_n head_n as_o it_o s._n paul_n have_v point_v he_o out_o with_o the_o finger_n indeed_o becane_n in_o ask_v i_o how_o i_o will_v concord_n they_o in_o the_o matter_n when_o i_o see_v and_o grant_v variety_n of_o the_o name_n proove_v those_o word_n of_o s._n paul_n to_o fit_v he_o well_o viz._n that_o he_o be_v puff_v up_o and_o know_v nothing_o for_o here_o he_o know_v not_o which_o country_n swain_n do_v know_v that_o there_o may_v be_v and_o be_v identity_n of_o matter_n or_o person_n when_o there_o be_v variety_n of_o name_n of_o that_o matter_n or_o person_n but_o because_o i_o do_v commiserate_v his_o fatherhood_n ignorance_n herein_o i_o will_v vouchsafe_v to_o teach_v he_o this_o one_o lesson_n take_v out_o of_o their_o own_o canon_n law_n which_o in_o dist._n 80._o ca._n loca_fw-la in_o the_o gloss_n school_v he_o thus_o idem_fw-la est_fw-la primus_fw-la et_fw-la patriarcha_fw-la sicut_fw-la et_fw-la dicit_fw-la lex_fw-la differentia_fw-la tantum_fw-la nominis_fw-la est_fw-la inter_fw-la pignus_fw-la et_fw-la hypothecam_fw-la a_o primate_n and_o a_o patriarch_n be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o as_o the_o law_n faith_n the_o difference_n be_v only_o in_o the_o name_n of_o pignus_fw-la and_o hypotheca_fw-la in_o latin_a in_o english_a of_o pledge_n and_o pledge_v and_o so_o of_o these_o two_o word_n in_o latin_a primatus_fw-la and_o suprematus_fw-la in_o english_a as_o we_o in_o england_n understand_v it_o supremacy_n and_o supremacy_n and_o the_o say_a canon_n law_n dist._n 99_o ca._n de_fw-fr primatibus_fw-la in_o the_o very_a text_n itself_o school_v he_o more_o full_o thus_o de_fw-fr primatibus_fw-la quaeritur_fw-la quem_fw-la gradum_fw-la in_o ecclesia_fw-la obtineant_fw-la a_o in_o aliquo_fw-la a_o patriarchis_fw-la differant_fw-la primate_fw-la et_fw-la patriarchae_fw-la diver_n sorum_fw-la sunt_fw-la nominum_fw-la sed_fw-la eiusdem_fw-la officy_n primate_fw-la and_o patriarch_n have_v diverse_a name_n but_o one_o office_n so_o the_o king_n supremacy_n may_v in_o latin_a have_v diverse_a name_n but_o it_o be_v one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o regal_a office_n becan_n exam._n 106_o page_n 106_o but_o if_o thomson_n be_v hear_v they_o who_o say_v the_o king_n have_v prima●●●_fw-la primacy_n of_o the_o church_n signify_v that_o he_o have_v power_n of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n but_o this_o be_v a_o great_a error_n not_o only_o in_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o therefore_o they_o err_v not_o only_o in_o the_o word_n but_o in_o the_o very_a thing_n who_o speak_v so_o what_o answer_v you_o to_o this_o you_o plain_o dissemble_v dr._n harris_n reply_n i_o answer_v plain_o and_o true_o first_o that_o mr._n thomson_n say_v that_o the_o word_n primatus_fw-la do_v signify_v power_n of_o the_o same_o order_n with_o bishop_n only_o in_o the_o papist_n sense_n and_o understanding_n but_o nothing_o less_o than_o so_o in_o the_o protestant's_n sense_n who_o mean_v by_o primatus_fw-la primacy_n power_n regal_a only_o and_o not_o episcopal_a in_o who_o sense_n mr._n thomson_n himself_o call_v that_o regal_a power_n primatum_fw-la as_o be_v show_v by_o becane_n himself_o produce_v mr._n thomsons_n own_o word_n q._n 12._o pa._n 43._o therefore_o they_o who_o speak_v so_o err_v neither_o in_o word_n nor_o in_o the_o thing_n itself_o second_o i_o answer_v plain_o without_o dissimulation_n that_o the_o jesuite_n mouth_n here_o run_v over_o with_o a_o palpable_a untruth_n since_o it_o be_v most_o certain_o true_a that_o not_o any_o one_o protestant_a english_a writer_n call_v the_o king_n supremacy_n in_o latin_a primatum_fw-la signify_v or_o will_v have_v signify_v thereby_o that_o the_o king_n have_v power_n sacerdotal_a with_o bishop_n and_o pastor_n indeed_o the_o papist_n do_v and_o do_v seek_v thereby_o open_o to_o scandalize_v we_o as_o though_o we_o ascribe_v to_o our_o king_n &_o queen_n power_n sacerdotal_a or_o episcopal_a in_o the_o church_n which_o move_v queen_n elizabeth_n of_o bless_a and_o famous_a memory_n in_o the_o late_a end_n of_o her_o injunction_n to_o command_v this_o explanation_n follow_v to_o be_v publish_v in_o print_n with_o this_o title_n a_o admonition_n to_o simple_a man_n deceive_v by_o the_o malicious_a her_o majesty_n forbid_v all_o her_o subject_n to_o give_v ear_n or_o credit_n to_o such_o perverse_a and_o malicious_a person_n which_o most_o sinister_o and_o malicious_o labour_v to_o notify_v to_o her_o love_a subject_n how_o by_o the_o word_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n it_o may_v be_v collect_v that_o the_o king_n or_o queen_n of_o this_o realm_n possessioner_n of_o the_o crown_n may_v challenge_v authority_n and_o power_n of_o ministry_n of_o divine_a office_n in_o the_o church_n wherein_o her_o say_a subject_n be_v much_o abuse_v by_o such_o evil_n dispose_v person_n for_o certain_o her_o majesty_n neither_o do_v ne_o ever_o will_v challenge_v any_o other_o authority_n then_o that_o which_o be_v of_o ancient_a time_n due_a to_o the_o imperial_a crown_n of_o this_o realm_n that_o be_v to_o say_v under_o god_n to_o have_v the_o sovereignty_n &_o rule_n over_o all_o manner_n person_n bear_v within_o these_o her_o majesty_n dominion_n &_o country_n of_o what_o estate_n
our_o uniform_a agreement_n in_o truth_n touch_v the_o king_n supremacy_n to_o be_v a_o seem_a discord_n so_o that_o a_o short_a reply_n to_o all_o the_o rest_n will_v be_v sufficient_a with_o reference_n unto_o this_o yea_o even_o to_o this_o one_o distinction_n of_o regal_a and_o sacerdotal_a right_o understand_v ❧_o becans_n jar_n ii_o question_n whether_o that_o this_o primacy_n which_o the_o king_n have_v in_o the_o church_n be_v ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a 1._o this_o be_v now_o another_o jar_n under_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o and_o king_n edward_n this_o primacy_n be_v always_o call_v ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a as_o it_o appear_v out_o of_o doctor_n sanders_n who_o word_n be_v these_o caluinus_fw-la henrici_fw-la primatum_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la oppugnavit_fw-la caluin_n do_v oppugn_v king_n henry_n ecclesiastical_a primacy_n again_o episcopus_fw-la roffensis_n quòd_fw-la heurici_fw-la primatum_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la nollet_fw-la confiteri_fw-la ad_fw-la mortem_fw-la producitut_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n because_o he_o deny_v king_n henry_n ecclesiastical_a primacy_n be_v bring_v forth_o to_o die_v etc._n etc._n andagaine_n multi_fw-la in_o custodijs_fw-la propter_fw-la negatum_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la regis_fw-la primatum_fw-la detenti_fw-la many_o be_v keep_v in_o prison_n for_o deny_v the_o king_n ecclesiastical_a primacy_n in_o like_a manner_n henricus_fw-la mandavit_fw-la ut_fw-la filius_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la catholica_fw-la educaretur_fw-la excepto_fw-la primatus_fw-la ecclesiastici_fw-la titulo_fw-la quem_fw-la ei_fw-la reliquit_fw-la king_n henry_n command_v that_o his_o son_n edward_n shall_v be_v bring_v up_o in_o the_o catholic_a faith_n except_v the_o title_n of_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n which_o he_o leave_v unto_o he_o and_o yet_o more_o stephanus_n wintoniensis_fw-la edmundus_n londinensis_fw-la cuthbertus_n dunelmensis_n nicolaus_n wigorniensis_n &_o datus_n cicestrensis_n episcopi_fw-la timide_fw-la restirerunt_fw-la pveri_fw-la regis_fw-la primatui_fw-la spirituali_fw-la imò_fw-la simpliciter_fw-la subscripserunt_fw-la the_o bishop_n of_o winchester_n london_n dutham_n worcester_n &_o chichester_n do_v fearful_o with_o stand_v the_o spiritual_a primacy_n of_o the_o child_n king_n nay_o they_o absolute_o subscribe_v thereunto_o 2._o under_o queen_n mary_n that_o succeed_v to_o her_o brother_n king_n edward_n in_o the_o crown_n this_o title_n of_o primacy_n be_v take_v away_o in_o a_o parliament_n hold_v at_o london_n as_o witness_v jacobus_n thuanus_n in_o the_o 9_o book_n of_o the_o history_n of_o his_o time_n in_o these_o word_n antiquatus_fw-la ijsdem_fw-la comiths_n primatus_fw-la ecclesiastici_fw-la titulus_fw-la the_o title_n of_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n be_v abolish_v in_o that_o parliament_n the_o same_o be_v again_o restore_v under_o queen_n elizabeth_n as_o testify_v the_o same_o author_n in_o his_o 15._o book_n etc._n etc._n 3._o but_o now_o in_o these_o our_o day_n under_o king_n james_n this_o matter_n be_v call_v into_o question_n some_o not_o dare_v to_o call_v it_o primacy_n ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a but_o only_a primacy_n belong_v to_o ecclesiastical_a and_o spiritual_a matter_n among_o who_o be_v m._n doctor_n andrew_n or_o the_o king_n chaplain_n in_o his_o torture_n of_o tortus_fw-la pag._n 90._o where_o he_o write_v thus_o neque_fw-la verò_fw-la quoad_fw-la spiritalia_fw-la alium_fw-la nos_fw-la regi_fw-la primatum_fw-la tribuimus_fw-la neque_fw-la quoad_fw-la temporalia_fw-la alium_fw-la pontifici_fw-la detrahimn_v quàm_fw-la debemus_fw-la prio_fw-la ille_fw-la regibus_fw-la omni_fw-la jure_fw-la postertor_n hic_fw-la pontifici_fw-la nullo_fw-la jure_fw-la debetur_fw-la neither_o do_v we_o attribute_v one_o primacy_n concern_v spiritual_a matter_n unto_o the_o king_n nor_o do_v we_o take_v from_o the_o pope_n any_o other_o primacy_n concern_v temporal_a matter_n than_o we_o ought_v to_o do_v the_o first_o be_v due_a unto_o king_n by_o all_o right_a the_o late_a no_o way_n pertain_v to_o the_o pope_n etc._n etc._n ay_o when_o i_o first_o read_v these_o word_n in_o the_o chaplain_n book_n do_v think_v that_o he_o have_v take_v these_o two_o towit_n primacy_n spiritual_a and_o belong_v to_o spiritual_a as_o also_o these_o other_o primacy_n temporal_a and_o belong_v to_o temporal_a for_o one_o and_o the_o same_o thing_n but_o now_o it_o seem_v that_o the_o defender_n and_o interpreter_n of_o the_o chaplain_n to_o wit_n m._n tompson_n and_o m._n burhill_n do_v take_v it_o otherwise_o for_o so_o write_v m._n burhill_n pag._n 55._o of_o his_o book_n concern_v this_o point_n non_fw-fr dicit_fw-la primatum_fw-la spirituatem_fw-la sed_fw-la primatum_fw-la quoad_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la deberi_fw-la regibus_fw-la omni_fw-la ture_n he_o the_o chaplame_n do_v not_o say_v that_o spiritual_a primacy_n but_o primacu_fw-la belong_v to_o spiritual_a be_v due_a unto_o king_n by_o all_o right_a etc._n etc._n and_o theeag_fw-mi une_fw-fr pag._n 133._o in_o fine_a etsi_fw-la enim_fw-la regi_fw-la tribuimus_fw-la primuth_n in_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la non_fw-la tamen_fw-la primatum_fw-la spiritualent_a aut_fw-la e●●●siassicum_fw-la ei_fw-la tribuimus_fw-la sed_fw-la potius_fw-la primatum_fw-la quoad_fw-la les_fw-fr &_o personas_fw-la spirituales_fw-la &_o ecclesiasticas_fw-la for_o although_o we_o give_v unto_o the_o king_n pri●acy_n over_o the_o church_n yet_o do_v we_o not_o give_v unto_o he_o primacy_n spiritual_a or_o ecclesiastical_a but_o rathor_n primacy_n belong_v to_o thing_n and_o person_n spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a etc._n etc._n and_o m._n tompson_n pag._n 31._o of_o his_o book_n also_o say_v non_fw-la dixit_fw-la primatum_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la aut_fw-la spiritualem_fw-la quasi_fw-la formaliterintelligat_fw-la sed_fw-la quoad_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la idest_fw-la obiectiuè_fw-fr &_o materialiter_fw-la the_o chaplain_n say_v not_o the_o primacy_n ecclesiastical_a or_o spiritual_a as_o though_o he_o under_o stand_v it_o form_n ally_n but_o for_o so_o much_o as_o it_o belong_v eth_z to_o spiritual_a that_o be_v to_o say_v obiective_o and_o material_o etc._n etc._n in_o which_o sense_n the_o same_o author_n pag._n 95._o say_v dicimus_fw-la regem_fw-la gubernare_fw-la quidem_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la sed_fw-la non_fw-la ecclesiasticè_fw-la we_o say_v indeed_o that_o the_o king_n govern_v ecclesiastical_a thing_n but_o not_o ecclesiastical_o 4._o so_o as_o if_o you_o ask_v in_o england_n whether_o the_o king_n have_v primacy_n ecclesiastical_a or_o no_o it_o will_v be_v answer_v thus_o king_n henry_n k._n edward_n and_o q._n elizabeth_n have_v ecclesiastical_a primacy_n k._n james_n have_v not_o primacy_n ecclesiastical_a but_o only_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o it_o belong_v to_o ecclesiastical_a thing_n have_v then_o his_o majesty_n that_o now_o be_v less_o than_o they_o have_v so_o it_o seem_v be_v then_o the_o king_n primacy_n in_o england_n so_o nip_v and_o pare_v in_o so_o short_a a_o space_n so_o they_o say_v be_v it_o then_o almost_o decay_v and_o at_o anend_n i_o doubt_v not_o but_o it_o be_v what_o be_v the_o cause_n hearben_n to_o the_o common_a say_n what_o be_v quick_o get_v be_v quick_o lose_v as_o also_o to_o that_o of_o the_o holy_a scritture_v si_fw-la est_fw-la ex_fw-la hominibus_fw-la consilium_fw-la hoc_fw-la aut_fw-la opus_fw-la dissoluetur_fw-la act._n 5._o 38._o if_o this_o devise_n or_o work_v be_v of_o man_n it_o will_v be_v dissolve_v english_a concord_n the_o primacy_n or_o supremacy_n regal_a 14_o page_n 14_o under_o k._n henry_n 8._o k._n edward_n 6._o q._n elizabeth_n and_o k._n james_n have_v be_v be_v and_o will_v be_v one_o and_o the_o same_o that_o be_v to_o say_v supreme_a power_n regalin_n the_o church_n 2._o jewel_n defon_n par_fw-fr 6_o ca._n 9_o duasi_fw-la 1._o et_fw-la 2._o whereby_o king_n may_v not_o burn_v incense_n as_o ozias_n do_v nor_o rush_v upon_o episcopal_a function_n nor_o preach_v the_o gospel_n nor_o administer_v the_o sacrament_n to_o the_o people_n nor_o bind_v nor_o loose_v the_o which_o with_o some_o of_o our_o writer_n speak_v of_o by_o becane_n in_o this_o question_n be_v to_o govern_v ecclesiastical_a thing_n ecclesiastical_o but_o execute_v those_o thing_n only_o which_o belong_v unto_o they_o as_o king_n to_o perform_v that_o kingly_a function_n therein_o which_o david_n solomon_n ezechias_n 381_o tortura_fw-la tort._n pa._n 381_o josias_n and_o other_o of_o the_o most_o noble_a and_o most_o religious_a king_n have_v do_v and_o which_o be_v ever_o lawful_a fora_fw-la king_n to_o do_v or_o particular_o if_o you_o have_v rather_o thus_o the_o right_a and_o power_n by_o regal_a authority_n to_o make_v church_n law_n as_o that_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v blaspheme_v 29_o blaspheme_v dan._n 3._o 29_o that_o god_n shall_v be_v pacify_v in_o a_o fast_o 3.7_o fast_o jona._n 3.7_o and_o honour_v in_o a_o festival_n day_n 9.26_o day_n ester_n 9.26_o and_o all_o such_o as_o we_o read_v to_o have_v be_v make_v in_o the_o code_n authentiks_n and_o capitular_o by_o constantine_n theodosius_n justinian_n and_o carolus_n magnus_n moreover_o to_o delegate_v such_o as_o shall_v judge_v of_o the_o law_n so_o make_v 19.8_o make_v 2._o chr._n 19.8_o further_o to_o bind_v his_o subject_n by_o oath_n to_o keep_v those_o law_n 32_o law_n 2._o chro._n 15_o 14._o et_fw-la 34._o 32_o yeain_a 24.23_o
in_o his_o apology_n and_o monitory_a préface_n to_o the_o emperor_n etc._n etc._n endevour_v to_o prove_v that_o himself_o in_o england_n and_o every_o king_n in_o his_o kingdom_n be_v head_n or_o primate_n of_o the_o church_n there_o you_o confound_v head_n &_o primate_n as_o one_o thing_n here_o by_o a_o twofold_a question_n you_o sepatate_v they_o as_o diverse_a thing_n so_o the_o mule_n scratch_v himself_o the_o king_n do_v make_v no_o express_a mention_n of_o the_o word_n primate_n yet_o as_o you_o say_v he_o endevour_v to_o prove_v and_o prove_v demonstrative_o that_o he_o be_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o as_o the_o king_n we_o and_o your_o lelfe_n understand_v it_o it_o be_v all_o one_o to_o have_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o be_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n sith_o then_o weeagree_v in_o the_o thing_n why_o do_v you_o wrafig_v be_v about_o the_o name_n here_o of_o primate_n as_o before_o of_o primacy_n doctor_n tooker_n and_o master_n burhill_n lume_v open_o profess_v subscribe_v and_o swear_v that_o the_o king_n be_v the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n in_o and_o over_o all_o cause_n and_o person_n eoclesiasticall_a within_o his_o realine_n that_o be_v ●h●_n hainrick_n and_o thomson_n and_o yourself_o understand_v it_o in_o one_o word_n primate_n but_o tooker_n and_o burhill_n deny_v the_o king_n to_o be_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n they_o do_v so_o &_o that_o right_o to_o weet_v in_o your_o popish_a sense_n of_o supreme_a primate_n of_o the_o church_n sacer_n do_v tall_a or_o episcopal_a by_o which_o distinction_n well_o understand_v and_o use_v it_o appear_v that_o among_o we_o there_o be_v no_o jar_n at_o all_o touch_v the_o supremacy_n or_o primate_n becan_n exam._n 120_o pag._n 120_o you_o call_v i_o a_o ass_n because_o i_o say_v the_o english_a protestant_a writer_n jar_v in_o this_o point_n if_o i_o be_v a_o ass_n by_o contend_v you_o with_o i_o have_v you_o learned_a to_o strive_fw-mi only_o with_o ass_n belike_o you_o think_v you_o have_v to_o do_v with_o english_a predicant_o i_o be_o not_o of_o that_o tribe_n neither_o be_o i_o contrary_a to_o myself_o for_o i_o do_v not_o distinguish_v primate_n and_o head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o i_o show_v the_o english_a writer_n to_o dissent_v in_o both_o and_o that_o be_v very_o true_a because_o some_o afsirme_a and_o other_o deny_v the_o king_n to_o be_v either_o primate_n or_o head_n of_o the_o church_n dr._n harris_n reply_n to_o his_o quest_n i_o answer_v thus_o by_o god_n grace_n i_o have_v learned_a to_o dispute_v and_o to_o grapple_v with_o the_o most_o learned_a jesuit_n in_o the_o bunch_n and_o i_o be_o sorry_a that_o it_o be_v my_o ill_a hap_n to_o meet_v with_o such_o a_o slug_n as_o this_o icsuit_n be_v but_o such_o it_o full_v out_o so_o i_o must_v take_v up_o this_o burden_n and_o proceedin_fw-fr answeting_n as_o solomon_n say_v a_o fool_n in_o his_o folly_n lest_o he_o be_v proud_a i_o know_v by_o their_o book_n many_o jesuit_n to_o be_v very_o learned_a and_o i_o know_v many_o english_a preacher_n in_o learning_n to_o be_v nothing_o inseriour_a to_o their_o chief_a jesuit_n therefore_o this_o jesuit_n becane_n without_o all_o truth_n and_o good_a manner_n set_v the_o ass_n ear_n upon_o so_o many_o learned_a english_a preacher_n but_o they_o will_v nothing_o less_o than_o fit_v they_o he_o must_v resume_v the_o ear_n to_o himself_o and_o carry_v they_o about_o with_o he_o as_o his_o own_o touch_v his_o assertion_n i_o do_v not_o say_v that_o he_o distinguish_v the_o head_n and_o primate_n of_o the_o church_n as_o two_o thing_n diverse_a but_o that_o he_o confound_v they_o as_o one_o hcere_fw-la as_o one_o that_o be_v at_o dagger_n draw_v against_o himself_o he_o confess_v he_o do_v not_o nor_o do_v distinguish_v they_o and_o yet_o here_o with_o two_o disiunctive_a particle_n he_o separate_v they_o indeed_o with_o the_o papist_n what_o be_v the_o papal_a primate_n of_o the_o church_n but_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o just_o i_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o jesuit_n for_o make_v two_o question_n of_o one_o viz._n i._o whether_o the_o king_n be_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o whether_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o not_o thus_o rather_o according_a to_o his_o word_n and_o meaning_n whether_o the_o king_n be_v head_n or_o primate_n of_o the_o church_n or_o head_n that_o be_v primate_n etc._n etc._n but_o in_o this_o his_o examen_fw-la the_o jesuite_n do_v increase_v and_o not_o lessen_v the_o jar_n with_o himself_o becan_n exam._n 121_o page_n 121_o i_o do_v not_o inquire_v what_o tooker_n and_o burhill_n have_v profess_v or_o swear_v of_o the_o king_n supreme_a government_n but_o what_o they_o have_v write_v of_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o church_n both_o of_o they_o deny_v that_o the_o king_n may_v be_v call_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n hainric_n say_v be_v may_v be_v so_o call_v there_o be_v the_o jar_n dr._n harris_n reply_n true_a it_o be_v in_o our_o english_a tongue_n as_o we_o do_v not_o call_v the_o king_n supreme_a government_n of_o this_o church_n primacy_n but_o supremacy_n so_o do_v we_o not_o cell_n the_o king_n primate_n ecclesiastical_a or_o primate_n at_o all_o but_o in_o respect_n that_o the_o english_a word_n supremacy_n be_v translate_v into_o the_o latin_a word_n primatus_fw-la as_o we_o in_o latin_a ascribe_v unto_o the_o king_n primatum_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la or_o primatum_fw-la in_fw-la omnibus_fw-la causis_fw-la et_fw-la supra_fw-la omnes_fw-la personas_fw-la ecclesiasticas_fw-la primacy_n ecclesiastical_a or_o primacy_n in_o and_o over_o all_o cause_n and_o person_n ecclesiastical_a so_o we_o in_o latin_a call_v the_o king_n primatem_fw-la ecclesiasticum_fw-la primate_n ecclesiastical_a to_o weet_v of_o his_o aforesaid_a regal_a not_o episcopal_a primacy_n or_o supremacy_n ecclesiastical_a that_o be_v in_o and_o over_o all_o ecclesiasticall_n which_o mr._n burhill_n be_v so_o far_o off_o to_o deny_v that_o he_o have_v express_o allow_v they_o who_o assert_v it_o so_o that_o here_o be_v nothing_o but_o empty_a strive_v about_o word_n which_o the_o apostle_n condemn_v i_o will_v therefore_o leave_v this_o jesuite_n snatch_v at_o syllable_n and_o catch_v of_o flic_n i_o say_v i_o will_v leave_v he_o so_o strive_v and_o with_o be_v he_o thus_o reason_v becan_n exam._n 〈…〉_o page_n 121_o 〈…〉_o doctor_n tooker_n and_o m._n burhill_n dispute_v against_o i_o who_o deny_v the_o king_n to_o be_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n do_v deny_v it_o in_o that_o sense_n wherein_o i_o say_v the_o king_n usurp_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n but_o i_o do_v not_o mean_a that_o the_o king_n usurp_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n sacerdorall_a for_o i_o elsewhere_o confess_v that_o the_o king_n disclaim_v it_o therefore_o they_o deny_v the_o king_n to_o have_v primacy_n ecclesiastical_a do_v not_o mean_v that_o he_o have_v not_o primacy_n sacerdotal_a dr._n harris_n reply_n who_o teach_v this_o unlearned_a jesuite_n to_o dispute_v from_o all_o particular_n concern_v the_o general_a do_v all_o disputer_n at_o all_o time_n reason_n according_a to_o the_o meaning_n of_o the_o adversary_n which_o often_o time_n they_o understand_v not_o touch_v the_o minor_a or_o late_a proposition_n or_o assumption_n of_o becane_n who_o will_v not_o think_v his_o meaning_n to_o be_v that_o the_o king_n by_o his_o confession_n disclaim_v all_o primacy_n sacerdotal_a that_o be_v episcopal_a archiepiscopall_a or_o patriarchall_a for_o all_o bishop_n archbishop_n and_o patriarch_n be_v priest_n and_o therefore_o their_o primacy_n episcopal_a etc._n etc._n be_v sacerdotal_a but_o this_o jesuite_n mean_v nothing_o less_o for_o by_o primacy_n sacerdotal_a he_o mean_v here_o only_o the_o power_n of_o inferior_a priest_n or_o presbyter_n in_o court_n internal_a only_o who_o have_v no_o jurisdiction_n in_o court_n external_a as_o though_o all_o our_o dispute_n be_v not_o of_o primate_fw-la and_o primacy_n as_o though_o any_o inferior_a priest_n who_o be_v not_o bishop_n have_v at_o any_o time_n be_v call_v primate_fw-la feel_o that_o by_o the_o canon_n law_n primate_fw-la &_o patriarch_n be_v all_o one_o as_o though_o primacy_n with_o the_o papist_n do_v not_o respect_v the_o external_a court_n only_o these_o be_v as_o plain_a as_o the_o nose_n on_o becanes_n face_n therefore_o his_o face_n be_v hard_a who_o abuse_v his_o reader_n so_o gross_o but_o i_o will_v return_v this_o his_o argument_n upon_o his_o own_o head_n thus_o if_o dr._n tooker_n and_o mr._n burbill_n deny_v the_o king_n to_o be_v primate_n or_o to_o have_v primacy_n in_o that_o dense_n than_o becane_n say_v the_o king_n usurp_v primacy_n and_o becane_n say_v the_o king_n usurp_v primacy_n sacerdotal_a that_o be_v to_o say_v episcopal_a then_o it_o follow_v that_o they_o deny_v the_o king_n to_o be_v primate_n or_o
in_o england_n the_o king_n do_v but_o nominate_v some_o to_o be_v bishop_n they_o be_v choose_v by_o the_o dean_n and_o chapter_n the_o king_n approve_v and_o ratifi_v the_o electiò_fw-la but_o they_o be_v consecrate_v bishop_n only_o by_o bishop_n and_o thereupon_o without_o any_o grant_n thereof_o from_o the_o king_n they_o have_v ipso_fw-la facto_fw-la episcopal_a function_n and_o jurisdiction_n in_o external_a court_n whereby_o it_o be_v apparent_a even_o by_o this_o jesuitesinterpretation_n of_o the_o word_n that_o our_o bishop_n do_v not_o descend_v from_o our_o king_n as_o the_o romish_a bishop_n descend_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o receive_v the_o gift_n of_o the_o holyghost_n and_o the_o virtue_n and_o effect_n of_o their_o preach_n from_o the_o pope_n and_o so_o descend_v from_o he_o as_o member_n from_o the_o head_n which_o pope_n say_v bellarmine_n be_v the_o only_a bishop_n jure_fw-la divino_fw-la by_o the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o bishop_n archbishop_n patriarch_n be_v but_o his_o curate_n jure_fw-la human●_n by_o the_o wordor_n inspiration_n of_o the_o pope_n inspirante_fw-la petro_n as_o leo_n say_v the_o pope_n breathe_v on_o they_o the_o holyghost_n all_o english_a academic_n will_v detest_v such_o descend_v of_o our_o bishop_n from_o the_o king_n who_o give_v unto_o our_o bishop_n choose_v and_o consecrate_v their_o baronry_n and_o jurisdiction_n coactive_a by_o corporal_a or_o temporal_a mulct_n which_o be_v dr._n tookers_o meaning_n herein_o but_o not_o jurisdiction_n mere_o sacerdotal_a or_o episcopal_a viz._n to_o excommunicate_a to_o give_v order_n to_o confirm_v etc._n etc._n and_o so_o here_o be_v still_o the_o concord_n maintain_v becan_n exam._n 134._o pag._n 134._o the_o rest_n which_o you_o cite_v out_o of_o hostiensis_n and_o the_o abbot_n you_o neither_o cite_v well_o nor_o understand_v it_o irk_v i_o to_o warn_v you_o so_o oft_o and_o to_o obtain_v nothing_o dr._n harris_n reply_n true_o i_o understand_v that_o martin_n becane_n be_v a_o very_a unlearned_a and_o slug_n jesuite_n as_o shall_v in_o this_o place_n manifest_o appear_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o pray_v you_o christian_a reader_n to_o observe_v how_o the_o case_n be_v now_o alter_v touch_v the_o popish_a headship_n from_o that_o it_o be_v heretofore_o for_o even_o as_o antichrist_n grow_v on_o to_o his_o height_n of_o impudence_n and_o impiety_n so_o the_o headship_n increase_v heretofore_o the_o pope_n be_v say_v to_o be_v not_o simple_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n as_o christ_n be_v but_o the_o inferiour-ministeriall_a head_n now_o he_o be_v grow_v to_o be_v the_o supreme_a head_n equal_a with_o christ_n as_o have_v the_o same_o tribunal_n and_o consistory_n that_o christ_n have_v and_o be_v able_a to_o do_v all_o that_o christ_n can_v do_v to_o prove_v this_o i_o cite_v the_o word_n of_o the_o two_o most_o famous_a and_o judicious_o learned_a canonist_n that_o ever_o be_v cardinal_n hostiensis_n and_o abbot_n panormitane_n and_o in_o the_o margin_n of_o my_o book_n i_o quote_v right_o the_o place_n where_o those_o word_n be_v write_v the_o matter_n you_o see_v to_o be_v of_o the_o great_a moment_n and_o most_o fit_v to_o the_o dispute_n of_o the_o head_n of_o the_o church_n here_o in_o hand_n yet_o the_o jesuite_n have_v no_o other_o thing_n to_o answer_v but_o this_o you_o do_v not_o cite_v those_o word_n well_o nor_o understand_v they_o whereof_o christian_n reader_n be_v you_o judge_v after_o that_o i_o have_v produce_v at_o large_a their_o own_o word_n which_o be_v as_o follow_v panormitan_n super_fw-la prima_fw-la primi_fw-la de_fw-la electione_n cap._n vener_n abilem_fw-la verb._n transtulit_fw-la papa_n transtulit_fw-la imperium_fw-la in_o germanos_fw-la papa_n autem_fw-la hoc_fw-la potuit_fw-la facere_fw-la ex_fw-la magna_fw-la causa_fw-la concurrente_fw-la cum_fw-la possit_fw-la facere_fw-la quicquid_fw-la deus_fw-la potest_fw-la alias_o christus_fw-la non_fw-la fuisset_fw-la diligens_fw-la paterfamilias_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la dimisisset_fw-la in_o terris_fw-la aliquem_fw-la loco_fw-la svi_fw-la qui_fw-la expedientibus_fw-la causis_fw-la possit_fw-la omne_fw-la facere_fw-la quae_fw-la ipse_fw-la christus_fw-la hanc_fw-la regulam_fw-la firmavit_fw-la hostiensis_n in_o cap._n quanto_fw-la de_fw-fr translatione_fw-la praelatorum_fw-la ubi_fw-la dicitur_fw-la quod_fw-la cum_fw-la dei_fw-la et_fw-la papae_fw-la idem_fw-la sit_fw-la consistorium_fw-la omne_fw-la potest_fw-la facere_fw-la quae_fw-la ipse_fw-la christus_fw-la excepto_fw-la peccato_fw-la sed_fw-la improprie_fw-la excipit_fw-la peccatum_fw-la quod_fw-la peccatum_fw-la non_fw-la cadit_fw-la sub_fw-la potentia_fw-la imò_fw-la sub_fw-la impotentia_fw-la the_o pope_n translate_v the_o empire_n to_o the_o german_n the_o pope_n may_v do_v it_o upon_o great_a cause_n because_o be_v can_v do_v whatsoever_o god_n can_v do_v otherwise_o christ_n have_v not_o be_v a_o diligent_a father_n of_o his_o family_n if_o he_o have_v not_o leave_v one_o in_o his_o own_o stead_n on_o earth_n who_o as_o cause_n require_v can_v do_v all_o that_o christ_n himself_o can_v do_v this_o rule_n have_v hostiensis_n confirm_v in_o cap._n quanto_fw-la de_fw-fr translat_a praelat_fw-la where_o it_o be_v say_v that_o see_v there_o be_v but_o one_o and_o the_o self_n same_o consistory_n of_o god_n and_o the_o pope_n the_o pope_n can_v do_v all_o thing_n that_o christ_n himself_o can_v do_v except_o sin_n but_o hostiensis_n improper_o except_v sin_n because_o sin_n fall_v not_o under_o power_n but_o rather_o under_o impotency_n or_o weakness_n by_o these_o their_o word_n thus_o at_o large_a set_v down_o it_o appear_v that_o i_o cite_v the_o word_n well_o and_o know_v what_o i_o cite_v even_o enough_o to_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o popish_a primate_n be_v a_o blasphemous_a head_n and_o that_o our_o king_n be_v no_o such_o head_n both_o which_o be_v appatant_n to_o any_o man_n of_o read_v but_o this_o slug_n jesuite_n be_v so_o unlearned_a that_o he_o understand_v nothing_o which_o have_v any_o sound_a learning_n or_o judicious_a read_n in_o it_o ❧_o becans_n jar_n v._o question_n whether_o the_o king_n primacy_n do_v consist_v in_o any_o power_n or_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a here_o now_o be_v there_o a_o great_a jaure_n and_o debate_n among_o our_o english_a adversary_n nor_o can_v the_o same_o be_v easy_o understand_v unless_o it_o be_v first_o well_o distinguish_v ecclesiastical_a power_n be_v threefold_a as_o the_o divine_n do_v teach_v one_o of_o order_n another_o of_o interior_a jurisdiction_n the_o three_o of_o exterior_a inrisdiction_n to_o the_o first_o belong_v to_o effect_n or_o consecrate_v and_o to_o administer_v sacrament_n to_o the_o second_o to_o govern_v the_o church_n in_o the_o interior_a court_n or_o court_n of_o conscience_n and_o to_o the_o three_o belong_v to_o govern_v the_o church_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n now_o certain_a it_o be_v that_o the_o king_n have_v not_o the_o power_n of_o order_n by_o reason_n of_o his_o primacy_n for_o this_o do_v m._n tooker_n confess_v page_n 14._o where_o he_o say_v reges_fw-la non_fw-la habent_fw-la potellatem_fw-la administrandi_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la king_n have_v not_o power_n to_o administer_v sacrament_n it_o be_v also_o certain_a that_o be_v have_v not_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o interior_a court_n or_o court_n of_o conscience_n for_o this_o in_o like_a manner_n do_v m._n tooker_n confess_v pag._n 63._o omnis_fw-la jurisdictio_fw-la say_v be_v in_o foro_fw-la interiori_fw-la sacerdotum_fw-la est_fw-la nulla_fw-la regum_fw-la all_o jurisdiction_n in_o the_o interior_a court_n or_o court_n of_o conscience_n belong_v to_o priest_n not_o ance_n way_v to_o king_n etc._n etc._n 2._o all_o the_o question_n than_o be_v whether_o the_o king_n have_v jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a in_o the_o exterior_a court_n or_o no_o about_o this_o point_n be_v the_o englishman_n at_o a_o great_a jar_n and_o variance_n among_o themselves_o some_o affirm_v it_o some_o deny_v it_o other_o distingnish_v m._n tooker_n affirm_v it_o pag._n 305._o in_o these_o word_n qui_fw-la habet_fw-la plenissimam_fw-la &_o amplissiman_n iurisdiction●min_fw-la foro_fw-la exteriore_fw-la potest_fw-la candem_fw-la dare_n &_o auferre_fw-la rex_fw-la eam_fw-la habet_fw-la ergo_fw-la potest_fw-la eandem_fw-la dare_n &_o auferre_fw-la totum_fw-la hoc_fw-la liquet_fw-la ex_fw-la v._n &_o n._n testamento_fw-la he_o that_o bath_n most_o full_a and_o ample_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o exterior_a court_n can_v give_v and_o take_v away_o the_o same_o at_o his_o pleasure_n but_o the_o king_n have_v this_o jurisdiction_n ergo_fw-la he_o can_v give_v and_o take_v away_o the_o same_o all_o this_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o old_a and_o new_a testament_n etc._n etc._n with_o he_o agree_v also_o m._n salclebridge_n pag._n 140._o regesoleo_n sacro_fw-la uncti_fw-la capaces_fw-la sunt_fw-la jurisdictionis_fw-la spiritualis_fw-la king_n say_v be_v anoint_v with_o holy_a oil_n be_v make_v capable_a of_o spiritual_a jurisdiction_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o again_o in_o the_o same_o place_n out_o of_o the_o law_n of_o eng._n rex_fw-la say_v be_v est_fw-la persona_fw-la mixta_fw-la utpote_fw-la
ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n say_v he_o have_v some_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n but_o not_o all_o so_o the_o king_n have_v jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a with_o tooker_n supreme_a with_o the_o law_n all_o manner_n with_o the_o bishop_n some_z but_o not_o all_o with_o burhill_n and_o thomson_n none_o none_o at_o all_o be_v this_o your_o english_a concord_n dr._n harris_n reply_n the_o fool_n will_v always_o be_v play_v with_o his_o babble_n some_o fool_n with_o variety_n but_o this_o clay-witted_n jesuit_n play_v with_o his_o down_o right_a repetition_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n in_o the_o same_o word_n whereas_o heretofore_o he_o have_v receive_v in_o my_o english_a concord_n a_o full_a clear_a and_o solid_a answer_n to_o all_o and_o every_o one_o of_o these_o particular_a seem_a jar_n but_o in_o truth_n no_o jar_n at_o all_o wherein_o be_v manifest_v our_o good_a concord_n even_o in_o all_o those_o seem_a jar_n in_o short_a thus_o master_n thomson_n deni_v the_o king_n supreme_a church_n government_n to_o be_v call_v primacy_n or_o the_o king_n primate_n as_o papist_n understand_v it_o to_z wete_z episcopal_a but_o he_o himself_o call_v the_o king_n supreme_a church_n government_n primacy_n and_o the_o king_n in_o respect_n thereof_o primate_n as_o the_o protestant_n mean_v to_o weet_v regal_a so_o dr._n tooker_n deny_v the_o king_n to_o be_v call_v head_n of_o this_o church_n that_o be_v episcopal_a or_o papal_a but_o doctor_n tooker_n acknowledge_v express_o that_o the_o king_n be_v not_o only_o the_o head_n but_o also_o the_o top_n of_o the_o head_n of_o this_o church_n to_o weet_v regal_a and_o in_o that_o sense_n say_v ma._n burhill_n they_o say_v well_o who_o call_v the_o king_n caput_n 284._o appendix_n pag._n 284._o pastorem_fw-la et_fw-la primatem_fw-la the_o head_n pastor_n and_o primate_n of_o this_o church_n doctor_n harris_n say_v ma._n burhill_n deni_v the_o king_n to_o have_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o the_o outward_a court_n viz._n sacerdotal_a that_o be_v in_o dr._n harris_n meaning_n not_o presbyterial_a but_o episcopal_a according_a to_o that_o of_o lactantius_n who_o call_v sacerdotium_fw-la summum_fw-la episcopatum_fw-la sacerdotal_a that_o be_v episcopal_a archiepiscopall_a or_o patriarchall_a and_o dr._n tooker_n say_v that_o all_o jurisdiction_n of_o priest_n that_o be_v of_o presbyter_n or_o low_a priest_n or_o all_o jurisdiction_n presbyterial_a be_v in_o the_o inner_a court._n be_v here_o any_o jar_n the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n say_v the_o king_n have_v power_n of_o censure_n to_o weet_v regal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a as_o plain_o appear_v when_o solomon_n depose_v abiathar_n the_o high_a priest_n and_o again_o he_o say_v the_o king_n have_v not_o power_n of_o censure_n that_o be_v episcopal_a as_o excommunication_n or_o in_o short_a thus_o the_o king_n have_v some_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n viz._n regal_a and_o the_o king_n have_v not_o all_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n viz._n episcopal_a dr._n tooker_n &_o hainric_n say_v the_o king_n have_v all_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n i_o regal_a and_o our_o english_a law_n say_v the_o king_n have_v not_o as_o this_o jesuit_n write_v all_o manner_n of_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a for_o that_o will_v include_v both_o episcopal_a and_o presbyterial_a or_o in_o becane_n his_o sense_n sacerdotal_a but_o all_o manner_n of_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n that_o be_v regal_a ma._n thomson_n say_v the_o king_n have_v no_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n or_o primacy_n for_o primacy_n and_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n be_v all_o one_o with_o ma._n thomson_n episcopal_a but_o ma._n thomson_n say_v the_o king_n have_v primacy_n or_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n regal_a so_o the_o king_n have_v all_o and_o all_o manner_n supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n regal_a and_o the_o king_n have_v not_o all_o the_o king_n have_v none_o none_o at_o all_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n sacerdotal_a or_o episcopal_a the_o king_n do_v not_o govern_v ecclesiastical_a thing_n ecclesiastice_v that_o be_v episcopal_o or_o sacerdotal_o the_o king_n do_v govern_v ecclesiastical_a thing_n regal_o be_v not_o here_o a_o plain_a concord_n and_o uniform_a agreement_n the_o christian_a harmony_n whereof_o this_o jesuit_n can_v dissolve_v though_o all_o his_o jar_a heartstring_n will_v burst_v in-sund_a but_o whereas_o this_o jesuit_n say_v that_o m._n burhill_n affirm_v the_o king_n to_o have_v no_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n none_o at_o all_o in_o court_n either_o inward_a or_o outward_a he_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v past_o shame_n in_o his_o gross_a untruth_n for_o m._n burhills_n express_v word_n in_o his_o 285._o his_o pag._n 285._o appendix_n be_v these_o quomodo_fw-la nullam_fw-la nullam_fw-la penitus_fw-la huiusmodi_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la regiesse_n aio_fw-la he_o verbis_fw-la ubi_fw-la propositionem_fw-la qua_fw-la hoc_fw-la asseratur_fw-la falsam_fw-la esse_fw-la pronuntio_fw-la how_o do_v i_o say_v that_o the_o king_n have_v none_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n none_o at_o all_o in_o court_n inward_a or_o outward_a when_o i_o pronounce_v that_o proposition_n to_o be_v false_a wherein_o this_o be_v assert_v so_o the_o jesuit_n bring_v in_o ma._n burhill_n affirm_v that_o which_o he_o express_o denith_n the_o particular_a manner_n and_o material_a point_n of_o this_o supreme_a government_n regal_a and_o ecclesiastical_a be_v set_v down_o by_o our_o gracious_a king_n james_n by_o queen_n elizabeth_n by_o three_o of_o our_o most_o learned_a bishop_n viz._n of_o salisbury_n winchester_n and_z ely_z as_o be_v transcribe_v in_o this_o reply_n &_o english_a concord_n but_o especial_o in_o hainric_n salo-brigian_a his_o becano-baculus_a with_o uniform_a consent_n becan_n exam._n 141._o pag._n 141._o if_o supreme_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a that_o be_v primacy_n of_o the_o church_n be_v exercise_v under_o queen_n mary_n and_o may_v lawful_o be_v execute_v by_o the_o pope_n than_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v lawful_o separate_v from_o the_o regal_a crown_n for_o if_o it_o be_v by_o divine_a right_n unite_v unto_o it_o it_o can_v not_o be_v separate_v from_o it_o and_o lawful_o exercise_v dr._n harris_n reply_n if_o the_o heaven_n fall_n we_o shall_v have_v store_n of_o larkshead_n we_o will_v as_o soon_o grant_v that_o the_o heaven_n may_v fall_v as_o that_o the_o pope_n may_v lawful_o exercise_v supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n within_o this_o kingdom_n if_o queen_n mary_n will_v wilful_o &_o superstitious_o renounce_v that_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n which_o be_v due_a unto_o she_o as_o queen_n of_o england_n by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n yet_o it_o follow_v not_o that_o the_o say_v supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n be_v not_o by_o divine_a and_o humane_a right_n unite_v to_o the_o crown_n the_o public_a worship_n &_o scruice_n of_o god_n be_v under_o the_o law_n unite_v to_o the_o person_n leviticall_a &_o to_o the_o place_n where_o the_o temple_n be_v yet_o jeroboam_fw-la who_o make_v all_o israel_n to_o sin_n as_o quecne_n mary_n more_o bloody_a than_o he_o make_v all_o england_n to_o sin_n change_v both_o person_n and_o place_n by_o who_o and_o wherein_o god_n divine_a public_a worship_n be_v then_o to_o be_v perform_v here_o than_o be_v nought_o else_o but_o becanicall_a folly_n or_o foppery_n jesuitical_a becan_n exam._n 145_o pag._n 145_o that_o which_o you_o cite_v from_o the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n and_o assert_v here_o yourself_o viz._n that_o we_o give_v more_o to_o a_o abbess_n namely_o power_n to_o excommunicate_a than_o you_o to_o the_o queen_n be_v not_o true_a you_o ascribe_v all_o to_o the_o queen_n which_o you_o do_v to_o the_o king_n as_o to_o have_v primacy_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o english_a church_n etc._n etc._n abbess_n with_o we_o have_v not_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v as_o elizabeth_n with_o you_o have_v hear_v what_o our_o canon_n think_v of_o this_o matter_n it_o be_v plain_a mulierem_fw-la 33._o q_o 5._o ca._n mulierem_fw-la that_o the_o woman_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o dominion_n of_o the_o man_n or_o her_o husband_n &_o have_v no_o authority_n for_o she_o can_v teach_v nor_o be_v a_o witness_n nor_o judge_v how_o much_o less_o may_v she_o command_v or_o reign_v monialibus_fw-la de_fw-fr sentent_fw-fr excommunicationis_fw-la cap._n de_fw-fr monialibus_fw-la and_o again_o if_o nun_n or_o moniall_n lay_v violent_a hand_n upon_o themselves_o their_o convert_v or_o clerk_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v absoln_v by_o the_o bishop_n of_o that_o diocese_n wherein_o their_o monastery_n be_v hence_o the_o canonist_n gather_v that_o abbess_n can_v absolve_v and_o therefore_o can_v excommunicate_v their_o moniall_n and_o this_o be_v observe_v in_o our_o practice_n see_v suarez_n tom._n 5._o d._n 2._o sect._n 2._o et_fw-fr 3_o dr._n harris_n reply_n the_o reverend_a bishop_n of_o ely_n assert_v the_o abbess_n with_o papist_n to_o have_v or_o dinary_a jurisdiction_n spiritual_a and_o therein_o to_o be_v equal_a with_o abbat_n and_o that_o
large_a that_o a_o abbess_n may_v have_v a_o praelature_n and_o dignity_n with_o administration_n and_o a_o right_a to_o visit_v even_o without_o the_o monastery_n which_o right_o she_o may_v also_o commit_v to_o other_o and_o the_o bishop_n bitontine_n very_o late_o hold_v and_o prove_v the_o same_o in_o his_o work_n dedicate_v to_o pope_n clement_n 8._o see_v the_o very_a text._n sext._n the_o elect_n ca._n indemnitatibus_fw-la prove_v the_o same_o barthol_n in_o l._n 1._o cod_n de_fw-fr dign_a lib._n 12._o n._n 4._o say_v that_o abbess_n have_v dignity_n with_o administration_n not_o only_o over_o their_o nun_n but_o also_o without_o for_o that_o they_o have_v castle_n etc._n etc._n as_o abbat_n have_v dignity_n with_o administration_n sext._n de_fw-fr privilegijs_fw-la ca._n apostolicae_fw-la and_o therefore_o by_o a_o rule_v case_n among_o the_o doctor_n ground_v upon_o ca._n attendentes_fw-la in_o clementin_n de_fw-fr stat_fw-la monachor_n they_o ought_v to_o visit_v or_o to_o commit_v the_o visitation_n to_o other_o extra_n con_v ca_fw-mi vas_n electionis_fw-la out_o of_o these_o &_o the_o like_a steph._n d'_fw-fr aluin_n ca._n 2._o sect_n 12._o of_o the_o power_n of_o abbess_n conclude_v that_o abbess_n &_o prioress_n cloister_a by_o a_o certain_a right_n constitution_n and_o rule_v of_o s._n benedict_n from_o whence_o all_o the_o rest_n in_o a_o manner_n be_v draw_v as_o also_o by_o custom_n have_v authority_n and_o power_n ordinary_a spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a over_o those_o that_o be_v under_o they_o and_o cap._n 3._o sect_n 8._o that_o abbess_n &_o prioress_n ex_fw-la cardin_fw-fr council_n 17._o call_v 4._o bj_fw-la cap._n dilecta_fw-la and_o the_o gloss_n adjoin_v have_v all_o administration_n as_o well_o spiritual_a as_o temporal_a of_o those_o monasteriall_a nun_n save_v only_o of_o those_o thing_n whereof_o a_o woman_n be_v uneapable_a to_o weet_v of_o order_n now_o touch_v the_o power_n which_o abbess_n have_v to_o excommunicate_v because_o tho._n aqui._n in_o 4._o scent_n do_v 18._o q._n 2._o art_n 2._o in_o corpore_fw-la write_v thus_o excommunicatio_fw-la non_fw-la est_fw-la actus_fw-la clanis_fw-la directe_v sed_fw-la magis_fw-la exterior_a be_v iudicij_fw-la excommunication_n be_v not_o a_o act_n of_o the_o key_n direct_o but_o rather_o of_o external_a court_n navarre_n lib._n quinto_fw-la consil_n 1._o de_fw-fr sentent_fw-fr excom_n conclude_v that_o a_o woman_n by_o privilege_n may_v also_o excommunicate_a tabiena_n and_o arnilla_n verbo_fw-la abbatissae_n nu_fw-la 3._o beside_o panormitan_n astensis_n and_o other_o that_o a_o abbess_n may_v command_v the_o priest_n her_o subject_n to_o excommunicate_v their_o rebellious_a &_o obstinate_a nun_n or_o to_o absolve_v they_o whereupon_o steph._n d'aluin_n cap._n 3._o sect_n 12._o conclude_v those_o proinde_fw-la omnis_fw-la habens_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la ecclesiasticam_fw-la et_fw-la si_fw-la non_fw-la habeat_fw-la clavem_fw-la ordinis_fw-la potest_fw-la excommunicare_fw-la ex_fw-la d._n thoma_n therefore_o all_o have_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n may_v excommunicate_v according_a to_o tho._n aquin._n now_o that_o they_o have_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n witness_n panormitun_n in_o ca._n de_fw-fr stat_fw-la monachor_n jason_n consil_n l_o 40._o lib._n 2._o flaminius_n deresig_n lib._n 3._o q._n 12._o n._n 12._o saying_n dispositum_fw-la iur_fw-fr be_v in_o abbate_n habere_fw-la locum_fw-la in_o abbatissis_fw-la what_o right_a abbat_n have_v abbess_n have_v the_o same_o and_o again_o panormitan_n arnilla_n &_o flaminius_n write_v that_o abbess_v exempt_a have_v right_a or_o jurisdiction_n to_o visit_v the_o place_n and_o person_n subject_a to_o they_o and_o that_o they_o have_v clerk_n subject_a unto_o they_o pleno_fw-la jure_fw-la that_o be_v under_o their_o government_n as_o well_o ecclesiastical_a as_o temporal_a now_o say_v card._n parisius_n and_o flaminius_n out_o of_o the_o right_a to_o visit_v or_o from_o visit_v by_o herself_o or_o her_o deputy_n follow_v her_o jurisdiction_n to_o deprive_v depose_v correct_v punish_v and_o chastise_v and_o to_o have_v they_o subject_a to_o she_o pleno_fw-la jure_fw-la by_o full_a right_n do_v plain_o import_v jurisdiction_n deprivation_n visitation_n and_o correction_n to_o conclude_v this_o point_n if_o private_a man_n and_o woman_n be_v capable_a of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n if_o abbess_n have_v and_o execute_v the_o same_o in_o collate_v benefice_n institute_v suspend_v deprive_v visit_v judge_a crime_n and_o impose_v and_o receive_v purgation_n of_o bishop_n last_o excommunicate_v and_o absolve_a according_a to_o popish_a canon_n canonist_n custom_n and_o practice_v among_o they_o with_o what_o face_n do_v this_o jesuit_n or_o any_o other_o papist_n scandalize_v our_o king_n or_o queen_n for_o take_v or_o we_o for_o ascribe_v unto_o they_o supreme_a ecclesi_n jurisdiction_n yet_o not_o that_o whereby_o our_o king_n or_o queen_n may_v institute_v clerk_n excommunicate_a or_o absolve_v they_o oras_fw-la king_n james_n and_o late_a queen_n elizabeth_n have_v in_o their_o writing_n publish_v to_o the_o whole_a world_n therefore_o most_o impudent_o false_a be_v the_o jesuit_n here_o assert_v that_o queen_n elizabeth_n have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v touch_v suarez_n let_v this_o jesuit_n know_v that_o steph._n de_fw-fr aluin_n have_v refute_v in_o this_o point_n a_o far_o great_a &_o better_o learn_v man_n then_o suarez_n be_v to_z wete_z franciscus_n a_o victoria_n in_o his_o relect._n 2._o de_fw-fr potest_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la and_o show_v the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v as_o here_o have_v be_v declare_v christian_n reader_n i_o have_v be_v much_o here_o in_o this_o point_n because_o it_o be_v of_o that_o moment_n and_o so_o remarkable_a for_o recompense_n in_o reply_v to_o the_o remainder_n of_o becanes_n examivation_n i_o promise_v to_o be_v short_a the_o rather_o because_o in_o truth_n it_o be_v but_o froth_n not_o deserve_v any_o other_o answer_n at_o all_o but_o that_o which_o be_v already_o set_v down_o in_o my_o english_a concord_n ❧_o becans_n jar_n vi_o question_n whether_o the_o king_n of_o his_o own_o authority_n can_v assemble_v or_o call_v together_o counsel_n 1._o now_o follow_v the_o jar_n and_o debate_n of_o our_o adversary_n concern_v the_o office_n and_o function_n of_o the_o king_n primacy_n and_o they_o be_v six_o in_o number_n which_o may_v be_v dispute_v of_o the_o first_o be_v of_o assemble_v or_o call_v together_o of_o synod_n the_o second_o of_o enact_v of_o ecclesiastical_a law_n the_o three_o of_o confer_v or_o bestow_v of_o benefice_n the_o four_o of_o create_v and_o depose_n of_o bishop_n the_o five_o be_v about_o excommunication_n the_o sixth_o and_o last_o be_v about_o the_o decision_n and_o determine_v of_o controversy_n the_o question_n than_o be_v whether_o these_o office_n belong_v to_o the_o king_n primacy_n i_o will_v speak_v a_o word_n of_o each_o in_o order_n 2._o first_o it_o may_v be_v demand_v whether_o the_o king_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o primacy_n may_v of_o his_o own_o authority_n call_v or_o assemble_v together_o synod_n &_o therein_o sit_v as_o chief_a &_o head_n this_o be_v certain_o persuade_v that_o it_o may_v be_v do_v in_o the_o time_n of_o king_n henry_n k._n edward_n and_o queen_n elizabeth_n but_o now_o under_o king_n james_n the_o matter_n be_v call_v into_o question_n m._n salclebridge_n pag._n 121._o affirm_v that_o be_v can_v dot_v it_o in_o these_o word_n christiani_n principes_fw-la in_o regnis_fw-la suis_fw-la cum_fw-la laud_fw-la propria_fw-la auctoritate_fw-la synodos_fw-la convocarunt_fw-la constitutiones_fw-la condiderunt_fw-la causas_fw-la audierunt_fw-la &_o cognoverunt_fw-la christian_n prince_n have_v with_o great_a praise_n assemble_v synod_n by_o their_o own_o authority_n in_o their_o kingdom_n have_v make_v constitution_n hear_v and_o examine_v cause_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o pag._n 146._o rex_fw-la angliae_fw-la potest_fw-la synodos_fw-la indicere_fw-la omnium_fw-la ordinum_fw-la oecumenicas_fw-la et_fw-la in_o ijsdem_fw-la praesidere_fw-la the_o king_n of_o england_n say_v he_o may_v assemble_v general_n counsel_n of_o all_o order_n or_o degree_n and_o therein_o sit_v as_o precedent_n or_o chief_a etc._n etc._n and_o pag._n 155._o he_o say_v in_o like_a manner_n reges_fw-la angliae_fw-la suprema_fw-la sva_fw-la authoritate_fw-la deiure_fw-la synodos_fw-la convocarunt_fw-la the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v by_o their_o own_o supreme_a authority_n and_o by_o right_n assemble_a synod_n etc._n etc._n 3._o now_o ma_n tooker_n in_o this_o point_n be_v very_o variable_a one_o while_o contradict_v himself_o another_o while_o other_o and_o this_o be_v manifest_a out_o of_o the_o diverse_a testimony_n he_o produce_v the_o first_o be_v pag._n 37._o where_o he_o have_v these_o word_n a_o quibus_fw-la magis_fw-la aequum_fw-la est_fw-la indici_fw-la concilia_fw-la quàmabillis_fw-la penes_fw-la quos_fw-la semper_fw-la fuit_fw-la authoritas_fw-la ea_fw-la congregandi_fw-la cùm_fw-la autem_fw-la communiter_fw-la triplex_fw-la ponisoleat_fw-la concilium_fw-la generale_fw-mi provinclale_n &_o dioecesanun_n concilium_fw-la generale_fw-mi solius_fw-la papae_fw-la iussu_fw-la celebrari_fw-la vultis_fw-la sed_fw-la nequeillud_fw-la nisi_fw-la ab_fw-la
whether_o bishop●ickes_n or_o archbishopricke_n throughout_o the_o whole_a circuit_n of_o their_o kingdom_n for_o this_o true_o belong_v unto_o those_o who_o office_n it_o be_v to_o dispose_v there_o of_o to_o wit_n to_o the_o compreninciall_a bishop_n who_o have_v power_n to_o consecrate_v the_o say_a person_n on_o who_o they_o bestow_v they_o indeed_o the_o king_n majesty_n notwithstanding_o have_v this_o right_a with_o we_o in_o england_n which_o a_o inferior_a and_o subordinate_a power_n also_o have_v to_o wit_n right_o so_o nominate_v and_o present_v unto_o benefice_n etc._n etc._n 3._o behotde_fw-mi here_o a_o triple_a jar_n or_o discord_n between_o these_o two_o author_n and_o this_o in_o a_o daily_a and_o vulge_v water_n the_o first_o be_v that_o m._n henry_n salclebridge_n say_v that_o the_o collasion_n of_o benefice_n belong_v to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n in_o that_o they_o he_o the_o primate_fw-la of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n m._n tooker_n say_v to_o the_o contrary_a that_o it_o belong_v not_o to_o king_n at_o all_o but_o to_o bishop_n the_o second_o jar_n be_v that_o m._n salclebridge_n say_v that_o king_n by_o their_o own_o authority_n have_v confer_v benefice_n m._n tooker_n say_v that_o they_o never_o do_v nor_o have_v do_v the_o three_o be_v that_o m._n salclebridge_n say_v that_o king_n by_o virtue_n of_o their_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n may_v present_v 〈◊〉_d benefice_n m._n tooker●●●rr●th_o ●●●rr●th_z that_o in_o this_o point_n king_n havene_n more_o right_a than_o their_o subject_n and_o other_o inferior_a person_n for_o so_o he_o say_v hoc_fw-la habet_fw-la iuris_fw-la regius_fw-la maiestas_fw-la quod_fw-la minor_fw-la &_o subordinata_fw-la potestas_fw-la habet_fw-la the_o king_n majesty_n have_v in_o this_o point_n of_o confer_v beneficer_n the_o same_o right_n that_o a_o inferior_a and_o subordinate_a power_n bath_n etc._n etc._n whether_o of_o these_o two_o then_o shall_v king_n james_n believe_v if_o he_o have_v a_o fat_a benefice_n or_o a_o archbishopricke_n now_o to_o bestow_v english_a concord_n here_o be_v also_o a_o jesuitical_a trifle_a altercation_n about_o word_n hainric_n by_o collation_n of_o benefice_n understand_v presentation_n nomination_n to_o benefice_n the_o very_a donation_n of_o benefice_n doctor_n tooker_n thereby_o concclu_v the_o institution_n of_o presbyter_n and_o the_o consecration_n of_o bishop_n dr_n tooker_n acknowledge_v the_o king_n presentation_n nomination_n donation_n hainric_n by_o no_o mean_n attribute_v to_o the_o king_n either_o institution_n or_o consecration_n as_o both_o of_o they_o be_v proper_a go_v the_o bishop_n the_o king_n presenthig_n of_o his_o clerk_n to_o the_o bishop_n for_o institution_n of_o they_o into_o such_o benefice_n with_o cure_n as_o respect_v the_o king_n hereditary_a right_n of_o patronage_n be_v nor_o much_o different_a from_o the_o presentation_n make_v by_o his_o subject_n who_o have_v the_o like_a right_n of_o patronage_n unless_o it_o be_v herein_o viz_o that_o the_o king_n by_o his_o writ_n may_v and_o do_v compel_v the_o bishop_n especial_o after_o recoucry_v by_o quare_fw-la impedie_a oppose_v himself_o therein_o to_o institute_v fit_a clark_n present_v by_o his_o majesty_n or_o by_o other_o patron_n to_o the_o say_a bishop_n but_o the_o presentation_n of_o certain_a benefice_n with_o cure_n after_o they_o have_v continue_v void_a of_o any_o incumbent_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 18_o month_n appertain_v unto_o the_o king_n by_o way_n of_o lapse_n as_o unto_o the_o supreme_a ordinary_n in_o his_o dominion_n or_o the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n therein_o and_o that_o by_o the_o common_a law_n of_o england_n as_o be_v express_o show_v in_o becano-baculus_a page_n 142._o 150._o moreover_o there_o be_v certain_a benefice_n with_o cure_n call_v donative_n which_o admit_v no_o institution_n at_o all_o of_o these_o the_o king_n by_o his_o own_o donation_n only_o without_o any_o either_o episcopal_a institution_n or_o archidiaconall_a induction_n make_v the_o clerk_n rightful_a possessor_n doctor_n tooker_n know_v well_o these_o trivial_a and_o vulgar_a matter_n as_o becane_n here_o call_v they_o and_o bear_v in_o mind_n our_o most_o learned_a sovereign_n his_o word_n in_o his_o monitory_a preface_n touch_v the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n page_n 33._o how_o often_o have_v the_o king_n of_o france_n withstand_v the_o pope_n in_o such_o sort_n that_o they_o will_v not_o yield_v unto_o he_o the_o very_a collation_n of_o benefice_n and_o those_o other_o word_n concern_v bishopricke_n receive_v from_o king_n and_o emperor_n page_n 29._o even_o the_o pope_n also_o with_o all_o obedience_n and_o submission_n do_v acknowledge_v himself_o to_o hold_v his_o popedom_n of_o the_o emperor_n and_o page_n 31._o he_o that_o peaceable_o be_v desirous_a to_o know_v in_o what_o sort_n the_o bishop_n of_o spain_n scotland_n england_n hungary_n by_o ancient_a institution_n even_o until_o modern_a innovation_n come_v in_o and_o be_v invest_v by_o king_n with_o quiet_a possession_n of_o their_o temporal_n pure_o and_o entire_o he_o shall_v find_v the_o same_o by_o search_v the_o life_n of_o the_o father_n and_o by_o read_v history_n walthram_n naumburg_n lib._n de_fw-fr inuestit_fw-la episc_n behold_v then_o how_o a_o threefold_a concord_n arise_v out_o of_o that_o threefold_a jar_n which_o the_o jesuit_n feign_v the_o first_o concord_n hainric_n say_v that_o the_o confer_v of_o certain_a benefice_n belong_v to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n by_o way_n of_o lapse_n as_o they_o be_v the_o chief_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n doctor_n tooker_n affirm_v that_o the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n lie_v void_a of_o any_o incumbent_n above_o 18._o month_n appertain_v to_o the_o king_n only_o by_o way_n of_o lapse_n and_o not_o to_o the_o bishop_n or_o archbishop_n or_o to_o any_o other_o subject_n the_o second_o hainric_n say_v that_o king_n by_o their_o own_o authority_n have_v oftentimes_o give_v benefice_n to_o weet_v donative_n tooker_n aver_v that_o the_o king_n may_v give_v 40._o 50._o or_o more_o within_o the_o compass_n of_o one_o year_n if_o so_o many_o fall_n void_a the_o three_o hainric_n say_v that_o by_o the_o law_n of_o england_n king_n because_o of_o their_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n present_a to_o free_a chapel_n and_o that_o none_o of_o their_o subject_n to_o weet_v bishop_n or_o archbishop_n have_v authority_n to_o visit_v the_o say_a chapel_n dr._n tooker_n instruct_v by_o the_o same_o law_n avouch_v that_o king_n only_o have_v that_o authority_n and_o no_o subject_n but_o by_o the_o king_n grant_v final_o if_o the_o hungry_a jesuite_n who_o mind_v only_o his_o meat_n that_o be_v far_o benefice_n or_o archbishopricke_n can_v produce_v but_o one_o little_a either_o word_n of_o scripture_n or_o sentence_n in_o ancient_a father_n whereby_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n belong_v to_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o christian_a church_n as_o primate_n let_v he_o have_v the_o victory_n but_o if_o he_o can_v unless_o he_o be_v more_o than_o impudent_a let_v he_o seal_v up_o his_o lip_n and_o recognize_v those_o word_n of_o the_o parisian_a advocate_n arg._n 11._o page_n 25._o that_o of_o luk._n 9_o the_o son_n of_o man_n have_v not_o where_o to_o rest_v his_o head_n be_v equivalent_a with_o this_o the_o church_n by_o divine_a right_n have_v no_o territory_n becan_n exam._n 173_o page_n 173_o small_a benefice_n without_o cure_n may_v be_v confer_v upon_o clerk_n which_o be_v neither_o priest_n nor_o bishop_n therefore_o tooker_n by_o collation_n do_v not_o mean_a institution_n or_o sacration_n again_o he_o say_v that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n have_v no_o other_o right_n then_o to_o name_n or_o present_v but_o to_o give_v or_o confer_v be_v more_o than_o to_o name_n and_o present_v you_o feign_v tooker_n by_o collation_n to_o under_o stand_v instuntion_n or_o consecration_n therefore_o you_o dissent_v from_o tooker_n hainric_n say_v the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n belong_v to_o the_o king_n of_o england_n as_o primate_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n but_o this_o you_o deny_v for_o you_o bid_v i_o show_v out_o of_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a father_n that_o the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n belong_v to_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o church_n not_o i_o but_o hainric_n who_o affirm_v it_o must_v show_v that_o it_o be_v my_o part_n only_o to_o show_v that_o english_a writer_n dissent_v in_o this_o point_n this_o i_o have_v do_v let_v i_o therefore_o have_v the_o victory_n dr._n harris_n reply_n here_o the_o jesuit_n be_v as_o a_o chase_a timorous_a hart_n which_o have_v his_o deadly_a wound_n give_v he_o fly_v out_o a_o while_n straggle_v from_o his_o fellow_n but_o feel_v decay_n of_o his_o vital_a spirit_n and_o life_n blood_n run_v into_o the_o brake_n to_o hide_v his_o head_n and_o there_o to_o perish_v becane_n in_o his_o verbal_a but_o in_o no_o sort_n real_a confutation_n of_o his_o
majesty_n apology_n and_o preface_n monitory_a set_v down_o the_o confer_v of_o benefice_n as_o one_o of_o the_o proper_a office_n of_o the_o supreme_a primate_n ecclesiastical_a as_o he_o understand_v it_o sacerdotal_a or_o episcopal_a hainric_n in_o his_o becano-baculus_a tell_v the_o jesuite_n that_o although_o by_o none_o either_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a father_n it_o can_v be_v show_v that_o collation_n of_o benefice_n belong_v as_o proper_a to_o the_o say_a primate_n ecclesiastical_a yet_o he_o will_v encounter_v he_o therein_o and_o beat_v he_o with_o his_o own_o weapon_n as_o he_o do_v sound_o prove_v that_o good_a emperor_n have_v give_v popedom_n and_o that_o according_a to_o the_o canon_n law_n that_o catholic_a king_n by_o their_o prerogative_n regal_a have_v give_v as_o to_o this_o day_n they_o give_v archbishopric_n bishopric_n and_o other_o benefice_n because_o becane_n the_o jesuit_n never_o as_o yet_o answer_v nor_o ever_o will_v be_v able_a to_o answer_v hainric_n therein_o i_o urge_v the_o jesuit_n by_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a father_n to_o show_v the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n to_o belong_v to_o their_o ecclesiastical_a to_o weet_v episcopal_a primate_n promise_v upon_o that_o condition_n that_o we_o will_v yield_v the_o victory_n unto_o he_o but_o this_o silly_a jesuit_n not_o be_v able_a for_o his_o life_n produce_v the_o least_o either_o word_n of_o scripture_n or_o sentence_n of_o ancient_a father_n for_o it_o run_v away_o into_o the_o brake_n of_o his_o cloud_a ignorance_n cry_v out_o thus_o let_v i_o have_v the_o victory_n for_o i_o have_v prove_v a_o english_a jar_n how_o ridiculous_a be_v this_o jesuit_n here_o hainrie_n as_o have_v appear_v deny_v the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o supreme_a primate_n episcopal_a yet_o suppose_v that_o it_o do_v appertain_v to_o a_o supreme_a primate_n to_o weet_v regal_a that_o thereby_o he_o may_v cudgel_v the_o jesuite_n with_o his_o own_o weapon_n and_o according_a to_o becane_n his_o dispute_n prove_v the_o king_n to_o be_v primate_n to_o weet_v regal_a because_o the_o collatiò_fw-la of_o benefice_n belong_v unto_o he_o therefore_o not_o hainric_a but_o only_o becane_n be_v to_o show_v it_o out_o of_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a father_n which_o because_o he_o neither_o have_v nor_o can_v do_v his_o mouth_n be_v to_o be_v stop_v up_o herein_o ever_o hereafter_o touch_v the_o benefice_n he_o speak_v of_o the_o jesuite_n can_v name_v any_o small_a benefice_n without_o cure_n confer_v upon_o clerk_n that_o be_v neither_o priest_n nor_o bishop_n which_o may_v not_o by_o the_o law_n of_o this_o kingdom_n be_v give_v as_o well_o by_o the_o king_n as_o by_o the_o bishop_n or_o archbishop_n but_o what_o a_o trifle_a sophister_n be_v this_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v that_o doctor_n tooker_n by_o collation_n do_v not_o mean_a institution_n &_o sacration_n when_o as_o these_o his_o express_a word_n show_v that_o he_o mean_v thereby_o nothing_o else_o duel_n page_n 36._o reges_fw-la angliae_fw-la beneficia_fw-la curata_fw-la vel_fw-la non_fw-la curata_fw-la non_fw-la conferunt_fw-la omnino_fw-la in_o quempiam_fw-la maiora_fw-la minorave_n multo_fw-la minus_fw-la episcopatus_fw-la per_fw-la universum_fw-la ambitum_fw-la regni_fw-la svi_fw-la illorum_fw-la certe_fw-la collatio_fw-la vel_fw-la institutio_fw-la est_fw-la quorum_fw-la est_fw-la destitutio_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la comproumcialium_fw-la qui_fw-la potestatem_fw-la habent_fw-la personas_fw-la ipsas_fw-la facrandi_fw-la in_o short_a and_o in_o english_a thus_o the_o collation_n of_o benefice_n or_o bishopric_n belong_v not_o to_o the_o king_n but_o to_o bishop_n who_o office_n be_v to_o institute_n and_o consecrate_v certain_o in_o the_o jesuite_n sense_n the_o inferior_a bishop_n do_v not_o confer_v that_o be_v do_v not_o give_v archbishopric_n but_o in_o doctor_n tookers_n sense_n they_o do_v confer_v archbishopric_n that_o be_v they_o do_v consecrate_v archbishop_n be_v nominate_v not_o by_o bishop_n but_o by_o the_o king_n be_v choose_v not_o by_o bishop_n but_o by_o the_o dean_n and_o chapter_n whereby_o it_o be_v most_o manifest_a that_o doctor_n tooker_n by_o collation_n mean_v consecration_n collation_n as_o say_v the_o canonist_n in_o the_o large_a signification_n thereof_o contain_v presentation_n nomination_n donation_n and_o institution_n or_o consecration_n hainric_n by_o collation_n understand_v presentation_n nomination_n and_o donation_n all_o which_o he_o prove_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n as_o dr._n tooker_n also_o acknowlege_v dr._n tooker_n by_o collation_n understand_v institution_n and_o consecration_n which_o he_o and_o also_o hainric_a assert_v to_o belong_v to_o bishop_n and_o not_o to_o king_n so_o that_o hainric_n and_o dr._n tooker_n agree_v full_o in_o this_o point_n be_v understand_v according_a to_o their_o express_a word_n myself_o and_o hainric_n also_o conspire_v whole_o herein_o for_o hainric_n in_o his_o becano-baculus_a and_o i_o in_o my_o english_a concord_n assert_v express_o that_o the_o collation_n or_o presentation_n of_o benefice_n by_o way_n of_o lapse_n after_o 18._o month_n belong_v to_o the_o king_n as_o supreme_a primate_n regal_a therefore_o with_o very_o great_a either_o ignorance_n or_o impudence_n do_v the_o jesuite_n object_n any_o jar_n between_o i_o and_o hainric_n in_o this_o point_n both_o hainric_n and_o myself_o aver_v that_o collation_n of_o benefice_n can_v be_v show_v in_o scripture_n or_o ancient_a father_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o episcopal_a supreme_a primate_n but_o hainric_n have_v prove_v it_o sufficient_o that_o collation_n of_o benefice_n and_o bishopric_n do_v of_o old_a belong_v to_o the_o supreme_a primate_fw-la regal_a therefore_o this_o imputation_n of_o a_o jar_n between_o hainric_n and_o harris_n or_o hainric_n and_o tooker_n or_o tooker_n &_o harris_n deserve_v a_o whip_n or_o a_o cudgel_n for_o becane_n rather_o than_o a_o garland_n of_o victory_n becan_n exam_n 176_o page_n 176_o if_o by_o collation_n of_o benefice_n hainric_n and_o tooker_n mean_v diverse_a thing_n than_o there_o be_v a_o jar_n if_o they_o mean_v the_o same_o thing_n than_o tooker_n do_v not_o mean_a institution_n and_o sacration_n therefore_o you_o dissent_v from_o yourself_o dr._n harris_n reply_n the_o two_o horn_n of_o this_o dilemma_n as_o of_o the_o former_a be_v thus_o bend_v direct_o into_o the_o jesuite_n face_n if_o by_o collation_n of_o benefice_n hainric_n and_o tooker_n mean_v thing_n diverse_a then_o hainric_n may_v alcribe_v collation_n to_o the_o king_n and_o tooker_n may_v deny_v collation_n to_o belong_v to_o the_o king_n without_o jar_n if_o they_o mean_v the_o same_o thing_n then_o according_a to_o becane_n his_o dispute_n here_o there_o be_v no_o jar_n between_o hainric_n and_o tooker_n for_o if_o their_o meaning_n of_o thing_n diverse_a do_v arguea_n jar_n their_o meaning_n of_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n must_v argue_v concord_n becan_n exam._n 177_o page_n 177_o if_o by_o collation_n tooker_n mean_v only_a institution_n and_o sacration_n and_o yet_o acknowledge_v the_o king_n to_o confer_v 40._o or_o 60._o benefice_n in_o the_o year_n then_o b●_n grant_v that_o the_o king_n do_v institute_n 40._o or_o 60._o into_o benefice_n in_o the_o year_n every_o where_o you_o entangle_v yourself_o tooker_n say_v nothing_o of_o presentation_n by_o way_n of_o lapse_n nor_o to_o free_a chapel_n be_v exempt_a from_o episcopal_a visitation_n but_o rather_o the_o contrary_a in_o these_o word_n hoc_fw-la habetiuris_fw-la regius_fw-la maiestas_fw-la quod_fw-la minor_fw-la et_fw-la subordinata_fw-la potestas_fw-la habet_fw-la ius_fw-la inquam_fw-la nominandi_fw-la et_fw-la praesen_fw-mi andi_fw-la apud_fw-la nos_fw-la the_o king_n and_o his_o subject_n have_v like_o right_a to_o nominate_v and_o present_v their_o clerk_n dr._n harris_n reply_n what_o a_o clay-witted_n sophister_n be_v this_o martin_n father_n jesuit_n forsooth_o divinity_n reader_n in_o mentz_n reason_n thus_o tooker_n understanding_n by_o collation_n of_o benefice_n presentation_n nomination_n donation_n as_o hainric_n do_v acknowledge_v the_o king_n right_a to_o confer_v 60._o benefice_n or_o more_o in_o a_o year_n and_o 10._o or_o 12._o bishopric_n in_o a_o year_n as_o they_o may_v fall_v void_a therefore_o tooker_n take_v collation_n for_o institution_n and_o sacration_n grant_v right_a and_o power_n to_o the_o king_n to_o institute_n and_o consecrate_v so_o many_o priest_n and_o bishop_n yearly_a so_o boyish_o dance_v this_o jesuite_n under_o the_o net_n of_o equivocation_n easy_o perceive_v by_o all_o who_o run_v do_v but_o cast_v their_o eye_n upon_o he_o the_o king_n different_a and_o supereminent_a right_n and_o power_n above_o all_o his_o subject_n in_o bestow_v of_o benefice_n have_v in_o the_o english_a concord_n be_v unfold_v distinctlie_o and_o more_o sufficient_o than_o becane_n deserve_v thus_o 1._o the_o king_n only_o by_o his_o breve_fw-la episcopo_fw-la write_v to_o the_o bishop_n after_o presentation_n in_o his_o majesty_n court_n recover_v compel_v the_o bishop_n to_o institute_v the_o presentee_n 2._o the_o king_n only_o present_v
his_o clerk_n by_o lapse_n of_o time_n to_o weet_v after_o 18._o month_n vacancy_n 3._o the_o king_n only_o or_o they_o only_o unto_o who_o that_o be_v grant_v by_o the_o king_n present_v his_o clerk_n to_o his_o free_a chapel_n be_v exempt_v by_o he_o from_o episcopal_a visitation_n by_o his_o regal_a donation_n only_o without_o any_o institution_n or_o induction_n of_o bishop_n or_o archdeacon_n give_v his_o clerk_n real_a and_o lawful_a possession_n of_o such_o donative_n all_o these_o three_o particular_n be_v vulgar_o know_v and_o ingenuous_o confess_v by_o dr._n tooker_n which_o if_o he_o will_v vouchsafe_v this_o jesuit_n a_o answer_n will_v express_o appear_v in_o his_o after-writing_n as_o the_o like_a have_v be_v do_v in_o mr._n burhill_n his_o after-writing_n but_o all_o these_o three_o instance_n of_o regal_a supremacy_n above_o all_o his_o subject_n clergy_n or_o lay_v this_o unlearned_a jesuite_n silent_o pass_v over_o only_o as_o the_o dog_n turn_v to_o his_o vomit_n so_o he_o in_o his_o examen_fw-la return_v to_o his_o loathsome_a froth_n and_o scum_n of_o idle_a repetition_n of_o the_o self_n same_o thing_n matter_n sentence_n word_n and_o syllable_n which_o in_o his_o jar_n he_o have_v ser_fw-mi forth_o in_o print_n and_o which_o say_v froth_n by_o the_o very_a blast_n of_o my_o english_a concord_n be_v utter_o dissolve_v and_o scatter_v long_o before_o this_o his_o examen_fw-la peep_v out_o ❧_o becans_n jar_n ix_o question_n whether_o the_o king_n can_v create_v and_o depose_v bishop_n or_o no_o 1._o master_n salclebridge_n say_v that_o be_v can_v for_o thus_o he_o write_v pag._n 121._o christiani_n principes_fw-la in_o suis_fw-la regnis_fw-la cum_fw-la laud_fw-la propria_fw-la authoritate_fw-la episcopos_fw-la crearunt_fw-la &_o deposuerunt_fw-la christian_n prince_n have_v in_o their_o kingdom_n by_o their_o own_o proper_a authority_n create_v and_o depose_v bishop_n and_o that_o with_o praise_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o again_o pag._n 144._o rex_fw-la angliae_fw-la archidiacono_n richmundiae_fw-la episcopalem_fw-la concessit_fw-la jurisdictionem_fw-la the_o king_n of_o england_n grant_v episcopal_a jurisdiction_n to_o the_o archdeacon_n of_o richmond_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o further_o pag._n 155._o reges_fw-la angliae_fw-la suprema_fw-la sva_fw-la authoritate_fw-la deiure_fw-la atquecum_fw-la laud_fw-la omnium_fw-la ordinum_fw-la episcopos_fw-la elegerunt_fw-la ac_fw-la proinde_fw-la deponere_fw-la potuerunt_fw-la the_o king_n of_o england_n of_o their_o own_o supreme_a authority_n by_o right_a and_o with_o praise_n of_o all_o manner_n estate_n have_v elect_v bishop_n and_o therefore_o they_o may_v depose_v they_o also_o etc._n etc._n and_o then_o last_o constat_fw-la christianos_n principes_fw-la cum_fw-la laud_fw-la episcopos_fw-la elegisse_fw-la &_o deposuisse_fw-la etiam_fw-la romanos_fw-la it_o be_v manifest_a that_o christian_a prince_n have_v elect_v and_o depose_v bishop_n yea_o pope_n also_o and_o that_o with_o their_o praise_n etc._n etc._n 2._o now_o m._n tooker_n he_o deny_v in_o the_o place_n bifore_fw-la cite_v that_o the_o king_n can_v create_v or_o depose_v bishop_n for_o there_o he_o assign_v 〈◊〉_d thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o ordain_v or_o create_v of_o a_o bishop_n to_o wit_n consecration_n of_o the_o person_n and_o a_o bishopric_n add_v that_o the_o king_n can_v perform_v neither_o of_o these_o two_o for_o neithere_o 〈◊〉_d be_v confer_v any_o benefice_n and_o much_o less_o a_o bishopric_n or_o archbishopricke_n neither_o have_v he_o any_o power_n to_o consecrate_v person_n in_o so_o much_o that_o in_o another_o place_n he_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v so_o far_o off_o from_o king_n james_n to_o have_v power_n to_o create_v or_o depose_v bishop_n that_o he_o will_v rather_o acknowledge_v himself_o for_o one_o of_o their_o scholar_n and_o disciple_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v pag._n 311._o serenissimus_a ac_fw-la pientissimus_fw-la rex_fw-la noster_fw-la jacobus_n non_fw-la habet_fw-la quicquam_fw-la antiquus_fw-la &_o honorificentius_fw-la quàm_fw-la ut_fw-la cum_fw-la valentiniano_n filium_fw-la se_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la profiteatur_fw-la &_o cum_fw-la theodorico_fw-la italiae_fw-la rege_fw-la se_fw-la alumnum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la &_o ciscipulum_fw-la archiepiscoporum_fw-la fuorum_fw-la &_o episcoporum_fw-la libenter_fw-la recognoscat_fw-la our_o most_o gracious_a and_o most_o pious_a king_n james_n do_v esteem_v or_o account_v nothing_o more_o noble_a and_o more_o honourable_a then_o with_o valentinian_n the_o emperor_n to_o profess_v himself_o a_o son_n of_o the_o church_n and_o with_o theo●●oricus_n king_n of_o italy_n most_o willing_o to_o acknowledge_v himself_o a_o foster-childe_n of_o the_o church_n and_o a_o disciple_n of_o his_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n etc._n etc._n 3._o this_o jar_n now_o as_o you_o see_v be_v of_o great_a moment_n for_o if_o the_o king_n can_v create_v or_o ordain_v bishop_n as_o m._n tooker_n say_v he_o can_v then_o it_o follow_v evident_o that_o thomas_n cranmer_n who_o be_v make_v archbishop_n of_o canterbury_n by_o the_o king_n henry_n the_o 8._o be_v no_o true_a but_o a_o false_a bishop_n no_o pastor_n but_o a_o robber_n one_o that_o enter_v not_o into_o the_o sheep_n fold_v by_o the_o door_n but_o climb_v up_o some_o other_o way_n whereof_o again_o ensue_v three_o other_o markable_a point_n first_o that_o all_o other_o bishop_n who_o be_v afterward_o either_o create_v by_o cranmer_n or_o by_o the_o king_n be_v lake_n unto_o cranmer_n himself_o second_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v of_o they_o by_o episcopal_a authority_n or_o juresdiction_n be_v of_o no_o validity_n or_o force_n three_o that_o they_o so_o ordaix_v be_v bind_v to_o restitution_n of_o all_o reve_v news_n and_o prosy_n which_o they_o have_v reap_v by_o their_o bishopric_n what_o counsel_n now_o be_v there_o to_o be_v take_v in_o this_o point_n let_v your_o academic_n i_o pray_v you_o consider_v english_a concord_n 58_o concord_n pag._n 58_o that_o christian_a prince_n have_v with_o commendation_n create_v and_o depose_v bishop_n yea_o bishop_n of_o rome_n not_o only_o hainric_a but_o also_o our_o most_o dread_a sovereign_n lord_n james_n the_o most_o learned_a king_n upon_o the_o face_n of_o the_o earth_n have_v manifest_v in_o his_o monitory_a preface_n out_o of_o the_o ecclesiastical_a history_n in_o these_o very_a word_n page_n 28._o inperatores_fw-la arque_fw-la reges_fw-la etc._n etc._n all_o these_o emperor_n and_o king_n which_o live_v religious_o and_o christianly_o be_v so_o far_o from_o think_v the_o pope_n to_o have_v any_o power_n over_o they_o that_o they_o themselves_o have_v create_v pope_n and_o when_o they_o grow_v irregular_a reform_v they_o and_o sometime_o also_o depose_v they_o and_o page_n 291._o sed_fw-la et_fw-la per_fw-la aetates_fw-la complurimas_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o for_o many_o age_n together_o the_o most_o assure_a and_o inviolable_a right_n of_o create_v the_o roman_a bishop_n remain_v with_o the_o emperor_n wherein_o my_o principal_a witness_n shall_v be_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n who_o decree_v in_o a_o council_n 780._o council_n sigeb_n an._n 734_o wathr_n de_fw-fr epis_n inuessat_fw-la mart_n polon_n an._n 780._o of_o 153._o bishop_n and_o abbat_n that_o right_a and_o power_n of_o choose_v the_o pope_n and_o ordain_v the_o sea_n apostolic_a shall_v remain_v to_o the_o emperor_n charles_n the_o great_a and_o moreover_o definitive_o ordain_v that_o all_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n throughout_o all_o province_n shall_v take_v their_o investiture_n from_o he_o adrian_n niem_fw-la de_fw-fr pnuil_n et_fw-fr jur._n dist_n 63_o ca._n adrian_n &_o that_o no_o bishop_n shall_v be_v consecrate_v unless_o he_o be_v first_o commend_v and_o invest_v by_o the_o king_n and_o whosoever_o shall_v offend_v against_o this_o decree_n hew_v rap_v he_o up_o in_o the_o band_n of_o anathema_n 1119_o mat_n paris_n in_o h._n act._n 1100._o sdem_fw-la an._n 1112_o et_fw-la an._n 1119_o page_n 34._o king_n henry_n the_o first_o of_o that_o name_n after_o the_o conquest_n give_v the_o bishopric_n of_o winchester_n unto_o william_n gifford_n and_o present_o invest_v he_o into_o all_o the_o possession_n appertain_v to_o that_o sea_n against_o the_o decree_n of_o the_o late_a council_n the_o same_o king_n henry_n give_v the_o archbishopricke_n of_o canterbury_n to_o ralph_n bishop_n of_o london_n and_o invest_v he_o by_o a_o ring_n and_o a_o staff_n gregory_n plat._n vit_fw-fr pela_n 2._o et_fw-la gregory_n beside_o not_o only_a plaina_fw-la but_o other_o popish_a writer_n do_v witness_n that_o the_o emperor_n consent_n for_o many_o age_n be_v to_o be_v obtain_v for_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n which_o thing_n bellarmine_n which_o all_o his_o skill_n declericis_fw-la declericis_fw-la can_v not_o handsome_o avoid_v moreover_o also_o the_o roman_a bishop_n be_v enjoin_v to_o pay_v unto_o the_o emperor_n exchequer_n a_o certain_a sum_n of_o current_a money_n for_o the_o obtain_n of_o their_o confirmation_n which_o custom_n endure_v for_o the_o space_n of_o seven_o hundred_o year_n agatho_n an._n 680._o in_o vita_fw-la agatho_n anastas_n an._n 678_o dist_n 63._o 1._o agatho_n after_o
christ_n as_o be_v witness_v by_o sigebert_n luitprand_n and_o other_o historian_n of_o the_o roman_a faction_n but_o every_o where_o we_o shall_v meet_v with_o example_n of_o emperor_n which_o cut_v the_o wing_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n usurp_v authority_n all_o these_o thing_n so_o substantial_o manifest_v and_o pithy_o dispute_v by_o our_o sovereign_a king_n in_o his_o apology_n for_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n page_n 127.128_o will_v dr._n tooker_n most_o willing_o subscribe_v unto_o especial_o see_v he_o demonstrate_v the_o same_o by_o sacred_a text_n say_v sub_fw-la veteri_fw-la testa_n 4_o 2._o chro._n 19_o v._o 4_o reges_fw-la haud_fw-la dubiè_fw-la gubernatores_fw-la erant_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la intra_fw-la fine_n suos_fw-la exauctor_n averunt_fw-la enim_fw-la summum_fw-la pontificem_fw-la aliumque_fw-la in_o eius_fw-la locum_fw-la subrogaverunt_fw-la 17_o 1._o reg._n 2._o v._n 17_o under_o the_o old_a testament_n there_o be_v no_o question_n but_o that_o king_n be_v governor_n of_o the_o church_n within_o their_o dominion_n for_o they_o depose_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o place_v another_o in_o his_o room_n true_o dr._n tooker_n affirm_v regem_fw-la non_fw-la sacrare_fw-la episcopos_fw-la that_o the_o king_n do_v not_o consecrate_v bishop_n and_o as_o true_o that_o the_o king_n be_v a_o son_n of_o the_o church_n as_o valentinian_n or_o with_o theodosius_n a_o pupil_n or_o a_o foster_n child_n of_o the_o church_n yea_o a_o disciple_n not_o only_o of_o archbishop_n and_o bishop_n but_o also_o of_o inferior_a priest_n and_o minister_n who_o sermon_n he_o more_o often_o hear_v but_o only_o quoad_fw-la officia_fw-la ministerialia_n respect_v the_o proper_a office_n of_o ministerial_a duty_n and_o not_o in_o the_o supreme_a government_n of_o the_o church_n and_o unto_o this_o purpose_n write_v dr._n tooker_n page_n 311._o of_o king_n edward_n the_o sixth_o titulumet_n stolam_fw-la pontificiam_fw-la aspernabatur_fw-la etc._n etc._n although_o he_o refuse_v the_o title_n and_o robe_n of_o a_o high_a priest_n yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o retain_v the_o christian_a supremacy_n to_o himself_o as_o the_o mean_a whereby_o he_o may_v more_o safe_o advise_v the_o church_n and_o provide_v for_o it_o against_o the_o time_n to_o come_v again_o he_o verifi_v as_o much_o of_o our_o king_n james_n and_o other_o christian_a prince_n page_n 312._o sunt_fw-la quidem_fw-la reges_fw-la christiani_n etc._n etc._n even_o now_o be_v christian_a king_n and_o other_o prince_n the_o high_a and_o supreme_a governor_n of_o all_o person_n whatsoeucr_n within_o their_o empire_n and_o dominion_n and_o have_v ever_o so_o be_v from_o the_o ancient_a time_n of_o the_o pure_a and_o primitive_a church_n and_o page_n 312._o non_fw-la tantum_fw-la sunt_fw-la praesules_fw-la in_o ordine_fw-la etc._n etc._n yet_o notwithstanding_o they_o be_v not_o prelate_n in_o any_o priestly_a order_n although_o they_o enjoy_v a_o supremacy_n in_o the_o christian_a regiment_n for_o with_o great_a constantine_n they_o ought_v to_o be_v common_a bishop_n of_o exterior_a matter_n and_o with_o charles_n the_o great_a ludovicus_fw-la pius_fw-la &_o lotharius_n make_v law_n eccelesiastical_a canon_n if_o need_v require_v or_o with_o king_n david_n solomon_n ezechia_n and_o ichoshaphat_n keep_v visitation_n in_o the_o temple_n and_o give_v order_n to_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n and_o why_o not_o then_o with_o solomon_n to_o depose_v and_o disrobe_v a_o high_a priest_n and_o put_v another_o in_o his_o place_n for_o which_o opinion_n dr._n tooker_n write_v page_n 152._o totumhoc_n quantumcunque_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n all_o this_o how_o great_a soever_o which_o be_v as_o great_a as_o may_v be_v be_v but_o a_o or_o dinary_a document_n of_o piety_n religion_n and_o royal_a jurisdiction_n wherefore_o this_o stand_v a_o fir_n i_o foundation_n of_o our_o side_n that_o king_n solomon_n out_o of_o his_o ordinary_a power_n may_v depose_v the_o high_a priest_n and_o bring_v he_o into_o order_n and_o therefore_o vain_a be_v the_o challenge_n of_o the_o roman_a bishop_n boast_v a_o immunity_n as_o though_o no_o secular_a prince_n can_v remove_v they_o for_o it_o be_v plain_a that_o this_o be_v practise_v in_o sacred_a scripture_n therefore_o with_o what_o face_n though_o of_o brass_n can_v the_o jesuite_n becane_n utter_v to_o the_o world_n this_o low_a the_o lie_n and_o from_o whence_o do_v he_o in_o another_o place_n confess_v that_o it_o be_v so_o far_o from_o king_n james_n to_o create_v and_o depose_v bishop_n that_o he_o rather_o acknowledge_v himself_o their_o foster_n child_n and_o disciple_n as_o though_o king_n solomon_n acknowledge_v not_o himself_o a_o foster_n child_n of_o the_o church_n and_o disciple_n of_o the_o priest_n when_o he_o depose_v abiathar_n and_o subrogated_a zadoc_n in_o his_o stead_n the_o jesuite_n sophister_n like_a be_v always_o wallow_v in_o a_o fallacy_n call_v ignoratio_fw-la elenchi_fw-la moreover_o doctor_n tooker_n page_n 37._o write_v rex_fw-la concedit_fw-la svam_fw-la regiam_fw-la licentiam_fw-la eligendi_fw-la as_o often_o as_o it_o happen_v to_o any_o cathedral_n church_n to_o be_v destitute_a of_o a_o bishop_n than_o the_o king_n by_o a_o write_v give_v licence_n to_o the_o dean_n and_o chapter_n to_o elect_v another_o person_n canonical_o but_o i_o will_v btiefe_o declare_v unto_o thou_o gentle_a reader_n the_o whole_a process_n and_o carriage_n of_o this_o election_n for_o it_o be_v common_a and_o vulgar_a every_o day_n thus_o therefore_o it_o proceed_v when_o any_o cathedral_n church_n want_v his_o pastor_n the_o king_n send_v forth_o his_o royal_a written_a congee_n destire_n direct_v to_o the_o dean_n and_o chapter_n command_v they_o with_o all_o speed_n to_o assemble_v and_o to_o choose_v a_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n for_o their_o sea_n but_o with_o this_o proviso_n that_o they_o choose_v no_o other_o than_o that_o person_n which_o shall_v be_v name_v by_o the_o king_n under_o the_o penalty_n of_o a_o praemunire_n which_o be_v the_o great_a punishment_n among_o we_o in_o england_n except_o death_n and_o the_o same_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n so_o name_v by_o the_o king_n and_o elect_v as_o aforesaid_a must_v be_v consecrate_v by_o the_o archbishop_n or_o bishop_n under_o the_o same_o penalty_n now_o consider_v learned_a reader_n for_o i_o will_v make_v thou_o my_o judge_n what_o other_o thing_n be_v this_o then_o to_o create_v archishop_n and_o bishop_n except_v one_o lie_v ceremonial_a formality_n but_o let_v we_o suffer_v that_o most_o bless_a martyr_n archbishop_n cranmer_n to_o rest_v in_o glory_n with_o christ_n in_o heanen_n this_o jar_n and_o difference_n be_v of_o great_a momenn_n i_o mean_v betwixt_o the_o papist_n and_o we_o for_o if_o it_o appear_v as_o clear_a as_o the_o light_n both_o by_o the_o pope_n canon_n law_n &_o also_o by_o open_a table_n of_o ecclesiastical_a history_n as_o our_o most_o dread_a sovereign_n have_v most_o exact_o demonstrate_v that_o the_o roman_a emperor_n create_v &_o elect_a pope_n &_o set_v in_o order_n the_o sea_n apostolic_a and_o if_o all_o archishop_n and_o bishop_n throughout_o all_o province_n receive_v their_o inuestiture_n from_o they_o according_a to_o the_o popish_a writer_n especial_o the_o jesuit_n all_o those_o roman_a bishop_n which_o have_v be_v so_o create_v and_o elect_v for_o many_o hundred_o year_n to_o omit_v all_o inseriour_a archbishop_n and_o bishop_n non_fw-la extiterunt_fw-la pastor_n intrantes_fw-la per_fw-la ostium_fw-la in_o ovile_n sed_fw-la praedones_fw-la aliunde_fw-la ascendentes_fw-la have_v not_o be_v pastor_n enter_v into_o the_o sheepefolde_a by_o the_o door_n but_o thief_n and_o robber_n ascend_v another_o way_n that_o be_v false_a bishop_n archbishop_n and_o pastor_n out_o of_o which_o i_o infer_v three_o thing_n first_o that_o all_o the_o bishop_n so_o create_v by_o emperor_n and_o king_n according_a to_o the_o word_n of_o genebrarde_n be_v disorderly_a and_o apostatical_a rather_o than_o apostolical_a second_o whatsoever_o be_v do_v of_o they_o by_o episcopallauthoritie_n or_o jurisdiction_n be_v of_o no_o moment_n force_n or_o validity_n three_o that_o the_o bishop_n so_o ordain_v be_v bind_v to_o restitution_n of_o all_o revene_n wes_z and_z and_z profit_n which_o they_o have_v reap_v by_o their_o bishopric_n see_v thou_o not_o jesuit_n how_o thou_o be_v beat_v with_o thy_o own_o rod_n quid_fw-la hic_fw-la consilij_fw-la capiendum_fw-la what_o devise_n be_v now_o to_o be_v take_v let_v your_o academic_n who_o now_o only_o have_v swallow_v up_o the_o sorbonist_n will_v rule_v the_o roast_n to_o weet_v the_o jesuitical_a father_n if_o it_o so_o may_v please_v their_o god_n layola_n see_v unto_o it_o becan_n exam._n 181_o page_n 181_o you_o use_v three_o argument_n to_o prone_a that_o doctor_n tooker_n agree_v with_o hainric_n herein_o viz._n that_o king_n may_v make_v and_o depose_v bishop_n i._o tooker_n embrace_v as_o orthodoxal_a all_o thing_n prove_v by_o the_o king_n but_o that_o king_n may_v create_v and_o depose_v bishop_n be_v sound_o pron_v by_o the_o king_n therefore_o tooker_n
embrace_v it_o as_o orthodoxal_a here_o first_o the_o minor_a be_v false_a for_o tooker_n deni_v that_o the_o king_n can_v create_v and_o depose_v bisoop_n for_o he_o say_v that_o the_o institution_n and_o destitntion_n of_o inseriour_a priest_n belong_v to_o bishop_n and_o not_o to_o king_n therefore_o the_o king_n have_v not_o solid_o prove_v it_o second_o it_o may_v thus_o be_v return_v all_o academich_n willing_o approur_n all_o thing_n sound_o prove_v by_o the_o king_n but_o the_o king_n have_v sound_o prove_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n therefore_o the_o english_a academic_n willing_o er●braec_fw-la it_o as_o orthodoxal_a the_o consequen●●_n be_v faise_v for_o powell_n very_o beliove_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n and_o the_o king_n be_v nor_o curtain_a of_o it_o the_o syllogistical_a form_n be_v good_n therefore_o one_o of_o the_o premise_n be_v false_a dr._n harris_n reply_n here_o have_v we_o the_o picture_n of_o a_o very_a unlearned_a jesuit_n who_o lineament_n be_v draw_v with_o his_o own_o pencil_n and_o which_o be_v depaint_v with_o his_o own_o lively_a colour_n first_o ignorant_o he_o confound_v as_o one_o a_o single_a narration_n with_o a_o double_a ratiocination_n and_o the_o institution_n and_o destitution_n of_o inferior_a priest_n with_o the_o creation_n and_o deposition_n of_o bishop_n second_o he_o answer_v two_o syllogism_n and_o those_o produce_v from_o his_o own_o forge_n only_o with_o deny_v the_o conclusion_n of_o both_o three_o he_o reason_v from_o one_o individual_a doctor_n tooker_n to_o all_o our_o university_n academic_n last_o he_o bring_v in_o master_n powell_n disallow_v that_o which_o he_o chief_o approve_v the_o single_a natration_n set_v down_o in_o the_o english_a concord_n be_v thus_o doctor_n tooker_n read_v and_o well_o approve_v his_o majesty_n solidargument_n especial_o that_o from_o exemplary_a act_n of_o solomon_n commend_v in_o scripture_n viz._n in_o depose_v abiathar_n and_o place_v zadock_n chief_a priest_n be_v so_o far_o from_o deny_v the_o power_n of_o king_n to_o depose_v bishop_n that_o he_o ground_v himself_o upon_o the_o say_a act_n of_o solomon_n conclude_v with_o the_o king_n and_o hainric_n that_o emperor_n may_v lawful_o depose_v pope_n and_o so_o make_v up_o the_o harmony_n of_o all_o good_a concord_n herein_o the_o jesuit_n transform_v this_o single_a narration_n into_o a_o double_a syllogism_n the_o former_a thus_o all_o which_o the_o king_n have_v sound_o prove_v tooker_n do_v not_o deny_v but_o embrace_v as_o orthodoxal_a but_o that_o king_n may_v depose_v bishop_n the_o king_n have_v sound_o prove_v therefore_o doctor_n tooker_n do_v not_o deny_v that_o king_n may_v depose_v bishop_n to_o this_o he_o answer_v thus_o doctor_n tooker_n deny_v that_o king_n may_v depose_v bishop_n therefore_o the_o king_n have_v not_o solid_o prove_v it_o then_o brief_o and_o plain_o his_o answer_n here_o unto_o be_v thus_o the_o conclusion_n of_o this_o syllogism_n be_v false_a therefore_o the_o minor_a be_v false_a which_o answer_n proceed_v from_o extreme_a ignorance_n in_o the_o very_a principle_n of_o logic_n but_o how_o prove_v he_o for_o he_o dare_v not_o be_v respondent_fw-la here_o the_o conclusion_n to_o be_v false_a because_o doctor_n tooker_n deni_v the_o institution_n and_o destitution_n of_o inferior_a priest_n to_o belong_v to_o king_n as_o be_v proper_a to_o bishop_n as_o though_o inferior_a priest_n and_o bishop_n be_v all_o one_o as_o though_o institution_n and_o destitution_n of_o priest_n be_v all_o one_o with_o election_n &_o deposition_n of_o bishop_n or_o pope_n one_o bishop_n may_v institute_v and_o destitute_a a_o hundred_o priest_n but_o one_o hundred_o bishop_n can_v choose_v or_o depose_v one_o bishop_n especial_o a_o archbishop_n or_o pope_n here_o be_v some_o lineament_n &_o lively_a colour_n of_o this_o jesuit_n gross_a ignorance_n more_o be_v to_o be_v see_v in_o the_o second_o syllogism_n follow_v thus_o all_o thing_n sound_o prove_v by_o the_o king_n all_o english_a academic_n approve_v that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n be_v sound_o prove_v by_o the_o king_n therefore_o all_o english_a academic_n allow_v as_o orthodoxal_a the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n to_o this_o he_o answer_v thus_o the_o conclusion_n be_v false_a and_o the_o form_n good_a therefore_o the_o mayor_n or_o minor_fw-la be_v false_a it_o skill_v not_o whither_o so_o that_o one_o of_o they_o be_v false_a what_o be_v this_o else_o but_o to_o his_o utter_a shame_n to_o display_v his_o intolerable_a ignorance_n to_o the_o world_n and_o to_o expose_v it_o as_o ludibrious_a to_o the_o mean_a academic_a sophister_n who_o shall_v be_v well_o lashr_fw-ge or_o just_o explode_v if_o they_o will_v answer_v right_o form_v syllogism_n by_o deny_v the_o conclusion_n but_o how_o do_v this_o jesuit_n prove_v this_o late_a conclusion_n to_o be_v false_a because_o gabriel_n powell_n believe_v this_o doctrine_n viz._n that_o the_o pope_n be_v antichrist_n which_o the_o king_n have_v sound_o prove_v to_o be_v orthodoxal_a wherein_o behold_v the_o strange_a blockishness_n of_o this_o jesuit_n who_o shall_v have_v instauce_v in_o one_o academic_a deny_v that_o which_o the_o king_n have_v sound_o prove_v viz._n the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n but_o he_o bring_v in_o master_n powell_n allow_v with_o all_o his_o 〈◊〉_d what_o the_o king_n therein_o have_v sound_o prove_v moreover_o if_o the_o king_n do_v not_o prove_v sound_o the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n then_o the_o jesuit_n take_v away_o the_o suppositum_fw-la and_o so_o she_o w_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o frivolous_a disputer_n if_o the_o king_n do_v solid_o prove_v the_o pope_n to_o be_v antichrist_n why_o shall_v not_o master_n powell_n believe_v it_o as_o orthodoxal_a the_o jesuit_n say_v the_o king_n do_v not_o hold_v it_o as_o certain_a reply_v first_o that_o be_v nor_o ad_fw-la idem_fw-la it_o be_v no_o answer_n to_o the_o syllogism_n many_o part_n thereof_o second_o though_o his_o majesty_n do_v not_o hold_v those_o argument_n so_o certain_a which_o 〈◊〉_d from_o that_o mystical_a book_n of_o the_o revelation_n 〈◊〉_d his_o majesty_n solid_o evince_v the_o same_o from_o other_o place_n of_o holy_a writ_n the_o meaning_n whereof_o be_v more_o certain_a clear_a and_o evident_a three_o saint_n paul_n teach_v the_o jesuit_n that_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o prophet_n be_v subject_a to_o the_o propher_n that_o the_o lord_n reveal_v some_o thing_n to_o one_o which_o he_o do_v not_o to_o another_o to_o conclude_v this_o strain_n the_o jesuit_n mayor_n proposition_n of_o this_o late_a syllogism_n do_v manifest_v the_o great_a store_n of_o ignorance_n in_o he_o argue_v a_o general_a of_o all_o english_a academic_n from_o the_o individual_a dr._n tooker_n becan_n exam._n 184_o pag._n 184_o the_o second_o argument_n tooker_n assert_v the_o king_n of_o england_n to_o have_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n therefore_o he_o confess_v that_o he_o may_v depose_v bishop_n the_o consequence_n be_v not_o good_a with_o you_o for_o some_o of_o you_o assert_v the_o primacy_n dony_n the_o power_n of_o depose_v bishop_n yo●_n take_v that_o ai_fw-fr grant_v which_o shall_v be_v proon_v what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o beg_v that_o which_o be_v question_v dr._n harris_n reply_n here_o also_o the_o ignorance_n of_o this_o jesuit_n silly_o mistake_v the_o meaning_n of_o the_o english_a concord_n in_o this_o point_n becan_n out_o of_o doctor_n tooker_n assert_v the_o king_n to_o be_v a_o foster-child_n and_o disciple_n of_o the_o bishop_n do_v conclude_v that_o therefore_o doctor_n tooker_n deny_v the_o king_n power_n to_o rule_v or_o depose_v bishop_n the_o english_a concord_n to_o prove_v the_o weakness_n of_o that_o consequence_n show_v out_o of_o doctor_n tooker_n that_o though_o king_n be_v not_o bishop_n but_o subject_a unto_o they_o in_o regand_fw-mi of_o their_o episcopal_a duty_n as_o in_o hear_v the_o word_n preach_v by_o they_o in_o receive_v of_o the_o sacrament_n administer_v by_o they_o yet_o in_o respect_n of_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a government_n they_o be_v ruler_n over_o bishope_n and_o may_v depose_v they_o as_o king_n edward_z the_o sine_z do_v who_o though_o he_o disclaim_v episcopal_a function_n yet_o he_o claim_v and_o use_v the_o primacy_n but_o let_v the_o argument_n run_v from_o the_o primacy_n of_o king_n to_o conclude_v their_o power_n to_o depose_v bishop_n i_o say_v it_o hold_v good_a consider_v that_o all_o papist_n make_v the_o power_n of_o depose_v bishop_n a_o part_n of_o the_o primacy_n and_o that_o not_o one_o english_a protestant_n writer_n ascribe_v the_o primacy_n to_o the_o king_n deni_v he_o the_o power_n to_o depose_v bishop_n here_o be_v then_o no_o beg_n of_o that_o in_o question_n but_o a_o solid_a put_n that_o out_o of_o question_n which_o be_v contraversed_a and_o sound_o conclude_v the_o power_n of_o king_n to_o depose_v bishop_n becan_n exam._n 185_o pag._n 185_o your_o
three_o argument_n be_v tooker_n write_v that_o solomon_n depose_v high_a priest_n therefore_o the_o king_n of_o england_n may_v do_v the_o same_o this_o also_o be_v no_o consequence_n for_o most_o grave_a author_n teach_v that_o these_o and_o such_o like_a consequence_n be_v not_o good_a etc._n etc._n the_o king_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n have_v that_o power_n therefore_o king_n in_o the_o new_a testament_n have_v the_o same_o dr._n harris_n reply_n this_o brewbate_a jesuit_n will_v fain_o have_v make_v a_o jar_n between_o hainric_n assert_v the_o king_n power_n to_o depose_v bishop_n and_o doctor_n tooker_n the_o english_a concord_n show_v that_o doctor_n tooker_n do_v not_o only_o assert_v but_o also_o prove_v the_o same_o by_o the_o exemplary_a act_n of_o solomon_n depose_v the_o high_a priest_n against_o this_o clear_a concord_n the_o icsuit_n oppose_v nothing_o but_o this_o that_o most_o grave_a author_n deny_v the_o argument_n which_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n for_o here_o the_o question_n be_v not_o whether_o other_o popish_a writer_n dissent_v from_o hainric_n or_o tooker_n but_o whether_o hainric_a &_o doctor_n tooker_n dissent_v herein_o neither_o in_o this_o case_n matter_v it_o whether_o this_o argument_n from_o salomon_n act_n be_v good_a or_o not_o it_o suffice_v that_o doctor_n tooker_n take_v it_o to_o be_v good_a becan_n exam._n 1●2_n pag._n 1●2_n these_o your_o argument_n help_v not_o your_o cause_n for_o either_o they_o be_v sound_n or_o not_o sound_v if_o sound_n they_o prone_a tooker_n to_o dissent_v from_o himself_o and_o so_o there_o be_v a_o jar_n if_o not_o sound_a why_o do_v they_o occupy_v any_o paper_n dr._n harris_n reply_n this_o jesuit_n be_v very_o unlucky_a in_o his_o dilemmaes_n for_o as_o the_o former_a have_v be_v so_o this_o be_v thus_o retort_v upon_o he_o these_o argument_n help_v my_o cause_n well_o for_o if_o they_o be_v unsound_a by_o becans_n dispute_n they_o prove_v not_o doctor_n tooker_n to_o dissent_v from_o himself_o and_o so_o no_o jar_n if_o sound_n what_o cause_n have_v the_o jesuit_n to_o dislike_n either_o they_o or_o the_o print_n of_o they_o thus_o be_v his_o whole_a examen_fw-la in_o this_o nine_o chapter_n utter_o dissolve_v and_o bring_v to_o naught_o ❧_o becans_n jar_n x._o question_n whether_o the_o king_n can_v excommunicate_v his_o obstinate_a subject_n or_o no_o 1._o here_o now_o do_v our_o adversary_n rank_n their_o king_n among_o ordinary_a man_n &_o what_o they_o grant_v unto_o he_o before_o here_o now_o they_o seem_v to_o revoke_v for_o they_o say_v that_o the_o king_n can_v excommunicate_v any_o of_o his_o subject_n &_o yet_o himself_o may_v be_v excommunicate_v by_o they_o and_o expel_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whereof_o himself_o be_v supreme_a head_n the_o former_a part_n here_o of_o do_v master_n tooker_n affirm_v pag._n 15._o in_o these_o word_n rex_fw-la non_fw-la habet_fw-la potestatem_fw-la distringendi_fw-la gladium_fw-la spiritualem_fw-la vel_fw-la quempiam_fw-la excommunicandi_fw-la the_o king_n have_v no_o power_n to_o unsheathe_v the_o spiritual_a sword_n nor_o to_o excommunicate_v any_o man_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o chaplain_n my_o lord_n of_o ely_n pag._n 151._o say_v nos_fw-la principi_fw-la censurae_fw-la potestatem_fw-la non_fw-la facimus_fw-la we_o do_v not_o give_v authority_n to_o our_o prince_n to_o use_v censure_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o master_n thomson_n pag._n 83._o excommunicare_fw-la nullo_fw-la modo_fw-la ad_fw-la suprematú_fw-it ecclesiae_fw-la pertinet_fw-la to_o excommunicate_v do_v no_o way_n belong_v to_o the_o supremacy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o again_o pag._n 84._o omnes_fw-la fatemur_fw-la regem_fw-la excommunicandi_fw-la potestarem_fw-la nullam_fw-la habere_fw-la we_o do_v all_o confess_v that_o the_o king_n have_v no_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v etc._n etc._n 2._o the_o late_a part_n of_o the_o former_a point_n affirm_v ma._n burhill_n pag._n 137._o when_o he_o say_v quod_fw-la ambrosio_n licuit_fw-la in_o theodosium_n idem_fw-la &_o alijs_fw-la in_o regem_fw-la simili_fw-la de_fw-la causa_fw-la liceat_fw-la etc._n etc._n as_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o ambrose_n to_o proceed_v against_o theodosius_n so_o be_v it_o lawful_a also_o for_o other_o to_o proceed_v against_o the_o king_n in_o the_o like_a cause_n etc._n etc._n to_o wit_n he_o will_v say_v as_o it_o be_v lawful_a for_o s._n ambrose_n be_v a_o bishop_n to_o excommunicate_a theodosius_n the_o emperor_n so_o in_o like_a manner_n it_o be_v lawful_a for_o our_o bishop_n of_o england_n to_o excommunicate_a king_n james_n if_o he_o offend_v in_o like_a manner_n and_o then_o again_o pag._n 242._o supremus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la gubernator_fw-la potest_fw-la eijci_fw-la ex_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la the_o supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n to_o wit_n the_o king_n may_v be_v cast_v forth_o of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o pag._n 267._o rex_fw-la etsi_fw-la iustusimè_fw-la excommunicatus_fw-la non_fw-la amittit_fw-la primatum_fw-la the_o king_n although_o he_o shall_v be_v most_o inst_o excommunicate_v yet_o he_o do_v not_o loose_v his_o primacy_n etc._n etc._n 3._o now_o i_o do_v not_o sec_fw-la how_o these_o thing_n can_v possible_o hang_v together_o or_o agree_v with_o those_o which_o hitherto_o before_o have_v be_v attribute_v to_o the_o king_n for_o unto_o he_o be_v attribute_v that_o he_o be_v primate_n and_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n that_o be_v be_v above_o all_o person_n as_o well_o ecclesiastical_a as_o temporal_a in_o his_o kingdom_n that_o he_o bathe_v supreme_a most_o ample_a and_o full_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a no_o less_o than_o political_a and_o temporal_a and_o notwithstanding_o all_o this_o be_v so_o great_a a_o person_n yet_o can_v he_o not_o excommunicate_v any_o one_o of_o his_o subject_n either_o laicke_n or_o churchman_n although_o never_o so_o rebellious_a and_o obstinate_a nay_o although_o he_o be_v so_o great_a as_o he_o be_v he_o may_v nevertheless_o be_v excommunicate_v by_o his_o subject_n and_o cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n whereof_o he_o be_v supreme_a head_n i_o can_v understand_v this_o mystery_n 4._o hereunto_o will_v i_o add_v three_o argument_n more_o which_o will_v increase_v the_o difficulty_n the_o first_o be_v he_o that_o have_v supreme_a most_o ample_a &_o most_o full_a jurisdection_n ecclesiastical_a in_o any_o kingdom_n may_v exercise_v all_o the_o action_n and_o office_n that_o belong_v unto_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a of_o that_o kingdom_n but_o now_o the_o king_n have_v supreme_a most_o ample_a and_o most_o full_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n as_o master_n tooker_n and_o master_n salclebridge_n do_v confess_v ergo_fw-la he_o may_v exercise_v all_o office_n belong_v to_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n ergo_fw-la be_v may_v also_o excommunicate_v for_o that_o excommunication_n which_o be_v denounce_v by_o sentence_n be_v a_o act_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n or_o else_o contrariwise_o if_o you_o will_v thus_o he_o that_o can_v exercise_v all_o act_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n in_o any_o kingdom_n have_v not_o supreme_a most_o ample_a and_o most_o full_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a in_o that_o kingdom_n but_o the_o king_n of_o england_n can_v exercise_v all_o act_n of_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdection_n in_o his_o kingdom_n because_o he_o can_v excommunicate_v any_o man_n ergo_fw-la he_o have_v not_o supreme_a most_o ample_a and_o most_o full_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a in_o his_o kingdom_n 5._o the_o second_o argument_n be_v this_o he_o that_o give_v to_o another_o power_n to_o excommunicate_v without_o doubt_n have_v power_n himself_o to_o excommunicate_v because_o no_o man_n can_v give_v to_o another_o that_o which_o he_o have_v not_o himself_o but_o the_o king_n of_o england_n give_v power_n to_o his_o bishop_n to_o excommunicate_v ergo_fw-la he_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o minor_a be_v prove_v out_o of_o master_n tooker_n pag._n 304._o where_o he_o affirm_v that_o the_o bishop_n of_o england_n do_v receive_v all_o their_o ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n of_o the_o exterior_a court_n from_o the_o king_n but_o now_o power_n to_o excommunicate_a belong_v to_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o exterior_a court_n as_o the_o chaplain_n pag._n 41._o and_o master_n tooker_n pag._n 305._o express_o teach_v we_o say_v rex_fw-la habet_fw-la omnem_fw-la iurisdictionem_fw-la spiritualem_fw-la in_o foro_fw-la exteriori_fw-la exceptis_fw-la quibusdam_fw-la censuris_fw-la the_o king_n have_v all_o jurisdiction_n spiritual_a in_o the_o exterior_a court_n except_v certain_a censure_n but_o now_o he_o except_v excommunication_n wherein_o you_o see_v be_v to_o be_v note_v again_o a_o contradiction_n in_o ma._n tooker_n for_o that_o he_o refer_v censure_n among_o which_o excommunication_n be_v one_o to_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o exterior_a court_n true_a indeed_o but_o yet_o he_o adjoin_v two_o other_o thing_n that_o be_v contradictory_n the_o first_o that_o the_o king_n can_v give_v unto_o bishop_n all_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o
our_o king_n much_o less_o of_o the_o king_n himself_o many_o year_n before_o king_n henry_n the_o eight_o be_v bear_v be_v of_o no_o force_n by_o the_o common_a law_n of_o england_n as_o be_v manifest_v by_o hainric_n in_o becano_n baculus_fw-la where_o also_o he_o have_v teach_v you_o out_o of_o the_o same_o law_n that_o the_o king_n of_o england_n be_v the_o supreme_a ordinary_n of_o his_o kingdom_n on_o as_o it_o be_v in_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o yet_o we_o doubt_v not_o but_o he_o may_v besuspend_v from_o the_o eucharist_n by_o a_o bishop_n to_o who_o he_o himself_o have_v commit_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n as_o theodosius_n be_v by_o ambrose_n that_o be_v by_o resnsall_n to_o give_v he_o the_o holy_a communion_n but_o not_o in_o any_o judicial_a or_o consistorian_n form_n of_o citation_n appearance_n and_o sentence_n to_o be_v cast_v out_o of_o the_o church_n the_o jesuit_n be_v deep_o deceive_v if_o he_o imagine_v that_o the_o action_n of_o ambrose_n be_v solemn_a and_o canonical_a or_o that_o it_o be_v excommunication_n in_o a_o strict_a and_o proper_a sense_n which_o thing_n i_o will_v when_o need_n require_v convince_v by_o many_o solid_a argument_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a season_n let_v he_o show_v i_o whether_o theodosius_n be_v canonical_o cite_v unto_o the_o consistory_n of_o ambrose_n or_o whether_o the_o emperor_n do_v answer_v for_o himself_o either_o in_o person_n or_o by_o his_o proctor_n or_o whether_o the_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n be_v pronounce_v upon_o the_o tribunal_n of_o the_o bishop_n or_o whether_o it_o be_v canonical_o denounce_v in_o the_o open_a church_n before_o he_o be_v forbid_v to_o enter_v into_o the_o temple_n and_o again_o by_o who_o commandment_n and_o by_o what_o example_n do_v saint_n ambrose_n alone_o without_o his_o fellow_n elder_n or_o the_o counsel_n of_o other_o bishop_n excommunicate_v the_o emperor_n of_o so_o many_o kingdom_n espceial_o see_v ambrose_n be_v neither_o pope_n nor_o patriatch_n and_o let_v the_o jesuit_n give_v some_o good_a cause_n why_o ambrose_n shall_v ●am_v ●●e_z upon_o so_o humble_a and_o godly_a a_o emperor_n by_o his_o excommunicate_v he_o who_o err_v only_o in_o one_o fact_n and_o not_o once_o blame_v or_o touch_n constantius_n a_o most_o proud_a godless_a and_o heretical_a arian_n last_o whether_o it_o be_v the_o custom_n at_o milan_n to_o excommunicate_v all_o murderer_n or_o else_o theodosius_n have_v wrong_v for_o jassure_v you_o murderer_n be_v not_o excommunicate_v in_o england_n and_o i_o think_v very_o few_o be_v so_o censure_v at_o mentz_n where_o becane_n live_v becan_n exam._n 191_o pag._n 191_o you_o answer_v that_o here_o be_v no_o jar_n because_o all_o your_o writer_n uniform_o agree_v in_o this_o that_o the_o king_n can_v excommunicate_v but_o here_o be_v the_o great_a jar_n because_o all_o english_a writer_n who_o confess_v it_o do_v manifest_o differ_v from_o themseluss_n as_o these_o three_o argument_n prove_v first_o whosoever_o have_v all_o manner_n supreme_a most_o ample_a &_o full_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a in_o any_o kingdom_n he_o may_v exercise_v all_o act_n which_o pertain_v to_o jurisdiontion_n ecclesiastical_a in_o that_o kingdom_n and_o so_o be_v may_v excommunicate_v to_o wit_n by_o a_o power_n undependant_fw-fr of_o any_o man_n such_o as_o the_o pope_n have_v the_o rest_n have_v it_o from_o he_o who_o may_v give_v it_o to_o they_o and_o take_v it_o away_o enen_fw-ge as_o the_o king_n who_o have_v supreme_a most_o ample_a jurisdiction_n civil_a in_o his_o kingdom_n may_v exercise_v allcivill_a act_n of_o that_o jurisdiction_n in_o his_o kingdom_n but_o the_o writer_n assert_v the_o king_n all_o manner_n supreme_a most_o ample_a and_o full_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a therefore_o they_o assert_v the_o king_n power_n to_o excommunicate_v dr._n harris_n reply_n here_o be_v but_o a_o idlerepetition_n of_o the_o self_n same_o argument_n which_o the_o english_a concord_n have_v answer_v before_o by_o deny_v his_o mayor_n proposition_n which_o denial_n be_v ground_v upon_o the_o testimony_n of_o saint_n augustine_n whereunto_o this_o jesuit_n answer_v not_o one_o word_n the_o substance_n whereof_o be_v this_o that_o attact_v of_o ecclesiastical_a government_n and_o only_o all_o those_o act_n which_o the_o king_n alone_o may_v do_v as_o king_n belong_v unto_o he_o but_o excommunication_n belong_v to_o every_o archdeacon_n therefore_o that_o belong_v not_o to_o the_o king_n the_o jesuit_n be_v put_v unto_o his_o shift_n have_v fancy_v this_o new_a start_a hole_n viz._n that_o power_n undependant_a of_o any_o other_o to_o excommunicate_v be_v proper_a only_a and_o to_o every_o supreme_a governor_n ecclesiastical_a therefore_o if_o the_o king_n be_v supreme_a governor_n ecclesiastical_a he_o have_v that_o undependant_a power_n to_o excommunicate_v whereunto_o irep_o first_o that_o no_o scripture_n no_o nor_o ancient_a father_n for_o the_o space_n of_o 600._o year_n after_o christ_n do_v assert_v this_o undependant_a power_n of_o excommunicate_v to_o belong_v to_o the_o supreme_a government_n ecclesiastical_a second_o that_o the_o ancient_a father_n deny_v this_o undependant_a excommunicate_a power_n to_o belong_v to_o peter_n much_o less_o to_o the_o pope_n but_o with_o one_o uniform_a consent_n dogmatise_v according_a to_o the_o scripture_n that_o all_o the_o apostle_n receive_v from_o christ_n immediate_o not_o from_o peter_n power_n to_o excommunicate_v equal_a with_o peter_n three_o that_o the_o very_a principal_a schoolman_n as_o peter_n lombard_n the_o master_n of_o the_o sentence_n thomas_n aquine_n the_o doctor_n angelical_a alexander_n alice_n the_o doctorirrefragable_a and_o john_n scot_n the_o subrle_n doctor_n deny_v the_o same_o first_o they_o all_o four_o define_v the_o key_n by_o the_o power_n to_o open_v and_o shut_v to_o bind_v and_o loose_v see_v lombard_n sent._n l._n 4._o do_v 18._o et_fw-la 19_o alexander_n summa_fw-la theolog._n part_n 4._o q._n 20._o memb_v 2._o et_fw-la 5._o aquin_n as_o in_o sent._n l._n 4._o do_v 13_o q._n 1._o art_n 1._o scot._n in_o sent._n l._n 4._o do_v 19_o art_n 5._o second_o alexander_n in_o summa_fw-la p._n 4._o q._n 20._o memb_v 5._o et_fw-la 6._o tho_n in_o 4._o sent._n do_v 24._o q._n 3._o art_n 2._o &_o scot._n in_o sent._n l._n 4._o do_v 19_o art_n 1._o affirm_v that_o the_o key_n promise_v to_o peter_n in_o the_o 16._o chap._n of_o matthew_n be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n in_o the_o 20._o chap._n of_o john_n four_o bellarmine_n himself_o deni_v this_o undependant_a power_n of_o excommunicate_v to_o be_v proper_a to_o peter_n and_o prove_v by_o four_o sound_a argument_n the_o say_a power_n to_o be_v common_a to_o all_o the_o apostle_n thus_o de_fw-fr ro._n pontif._n l._n 4._o cap._n 23._o that_o the_o apostle_n receive_v immediate_o from_o christ_n their_o jurisdiction_n first_o by_o these_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n john_n 20._o as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o send_v i_o you_o which_o place_n the_o father_n chrysostome_n &_o theophylact_n so_o expound_v that_o they_o say_v plain_o the_o apostle_n by_o those_o word_n be_v make_v the_o vicar_n of_o christ_n yea_o and_o receive_v the_o very_a office_n and_o authority_n of_o christ_n cyrill_n upon_o this_o place_n add_v that_o the_o apostle_n by_o these_o word_n be_v proper_o create_v apostle_n and_o teacher_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n and_o that_o we_o shall_v understand_v stand_v that_o all_o power_n ecclesiastical_a be_v contain_v in_o authority_n apostolical_a therefore_o christ_n add_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o see_v that_o the_o father_n send_v his_o son_n endue_v with_o chief_a or_o high_a power_n cyprian_a in_o his_o book_n of_o the_o unity_n of_o the_o church_n say_v the_o lord_n speak_v to_o peter_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n and_o after_o his_o resurrection_n say_v to_o he_o feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o although_o after_o his_o resurrection_n he_o give_v to_o all_o the_o apostle_n equal_a power_n and_o say_v as_o my_o father_n send_v i_o so_o i_o send_v you_o yet_o to_o manifest_a unity_n he_o constitute_v one_o chair_n where_o you_o see_v the_o same_o to_o be_v give_v to_o the_o apostle_n by_o those_o word_n i_o send_v you_o which_o be_v promise_v to_o peter_n by_o that_o i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n and_o after_o exhibit_v by_o that_o feed_v my_o sheep_n now_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o by_o those_o word_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n and_o by_o that_o feed_v my_o sheep_n be_v understand_v the_o most_o full_a even_o exterior_a jurisdiction_n second_o the_o election_n of_o mathias_n unto_o the_o apostleship_n show_v the_o same_o for_o we_o read_v acts._n i._o that_o mathias_n be_v not_o choose_v by_o the_o apostle_n nor_o any_o authority_n give_v unto_o he_o but_o that_o his_o election_n be_v crave_v and_o
obtain_v from_o above_o he_o be_v present_o number_v among_o the_o apostle_n sure_o if_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v jurisdiction_n from_o peter_n that_o aught_o to_o have_v be_v show_v most_o of_o all_o in_o mathias_n three_o it_o be_v prove_v out_o of_o saint_n paul_n who_o purposely_o teach_v that_o he_o have_v his_o authority_n and_o jurisdiction_n from_o christ_n and_o thereupon_o prove_v himself_o to_o be_v a_o true_a apostle_n for_o gal._n i._n he_o say_v paul_n a_o apostle_n not_o of_o man_n neither_o by_o man_n but_o by_o jesus_n christ_n and_o g_o o_o d_o the_o father_n and_o there_o to_o show_v that_o he_o receive_v not_o authority_n from_o peter_n or_o other_o the_o apostle_n he_o say_v but_o when_o it_o please_v he_o which_o have_v separate_v i_o from_o my_o mother_n womb_n and_o call_v i_o by_o his_o grace_n to_o reveal_v his_o scnne_n in_o i_o that_o i_o shall_v preach_v he_o among_o the_o gentile_n immediate_o i_o communicate_v not_o with_o flesh_n and_o blood_n neither_o come_v i_o again_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o the_o which_o be_v apostle_n before_o i_o but_o i_o go_v into_o arabia_n and_o turn_v again_o into_o damascus_n then_o after_o 3._o year_n i_o come_v again_o to_o jerusalem_n to_o see_v peter_n etc._n etc._n and_o chap._n 2._o for_o they_o that_o seem_v to_o be_v somewhat_o add_v nothing_o to_o i_o above_o that_o i_o have_v four_o it_o be_v prove_v by_o cuident_a reason_n for_o the_o apostle_n be_v make_v only_o by_o christ_n as_o it_o appear_v luke_o 6._o he_o call_v his_o disciple_n &_o choose_v twelve_o of_o they_o who_o he_o also_o call_v apostle_n and_o john_n 6._o have_v not_o i_o choose_v you_o twelve_o now_o that_o the_o apostle_n have_v jutisdiction_n it_o be_v manifest_a partly_o by_o the_o act_n of_o saint_n paul_n who_o 1._o cor._n 5._o do_v excommunicate_a and_o 1._o cor._n 6.7_o 11.14_o etc._n etc._n make_v canon_n partly_o also_o because_o the_o apostolical_a dignity_n be_v the_o first_o and_o supreme_a dignity_n in_o the_o church_n as_o it_o appear_v 1._o cor._n 12._o ephe._n 4._o see_v b._n thomas_n in_o 1._o cor._n 12._o hitherto_o bellarmine_n unto_o these_o i_o will_v add_v the_o testimony_n of_o two_o other_o father_n to_o weet_v origen_n and_o beda_n origen_n tract_n 1._o in_o matth._n say_v hoc_fw-la dictum_fw-la tibi_fw-la dabo_fw-la clave_n regni_fw-la coelorum_fw-la caeteris_fw-la quoque_fw-la common_a est_fw-la et_fw-la quae_fw-la sequuntur_fw-la velut_fw-la ad_fw-la petrum_fw-la dicta_fw-la sunt_fw-la omnium_fw-la communia_fw-la this_o say_n i_o will_v give_v thou_o the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n be_v common_a to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o word_n that_o follow_v as_o speak_v to_o peter_n be_v common_a unto_o all_o beda_n homil._n in_o euangel_n quem_fw-la i_o dicunt_fw-la say_v potestas_fw-la ligandi_fw-la et_fw-la soluendi_fw-la quamuis_fw-la soli_fw-la petro_n a_o domino_fw-la data_fw-la videatur_fw-la tamen_fw-la absque_fw-la ulla_fw-la dubietate_fw-la noscendun_v est_fw-la quode●_n caeteris_fw-la apostolis_n data_fw-la est_fw-la the_o power_n of_o bind_v &_o lose_v though_o it_o seem_v to_o be_v give_v by_o the_o lord_n only_o to_o peter_n yet_o without_o all_o doubt_n it_o be_v give_v also_o to_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o apostle_n by_o which_o it_o be_v sound_o prove_v that_o all_o the_o apostle_n have_v the_o full_a power_n of_o the_o key_n and_o most_o full_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a and_o in_o one_o word_n undependant_a of_o any_o other_o to_o bind_v to_o loose_v to_o open_v to_o shut_v to_o excommunicate_v &_o absolve_v give_v by_o christ_n equal_o &_o immediate_o unto_o they_o and_o their_o successor_n as_o well_o as_o to_o peter_n and_o his_o successor_n but_o all_o bishop_n be_v successor_n to_o the_o apostle_n therefore_o all_o bishop_n have_v most_o full_a undependant_a jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a to_o excommunicate_v and_o therefore_o by_o this_o jesuit_n argument_n here_o all_o bishop_n be_v supreme_a governor_n of_o the_o whole_a church_n what_o then_o shall_v become_v of_o his_o lord_n god_n the_o pope_n and_o the_o pope_n primacy_n who_o fullness_n of_o power_n must_v by_o this_o orthodoxal_a position_n be_v distribute_v equal_o among_o all_o bishop_n not_o as_o from_o peter_n or_o pope_n but_o as_o successor_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o so_o cyrill_n in_o john_n lib._n 3._o ca._n 20._o apostolis_n et_fw-la eorum_fw-la in_o ecclesijs_fw-la successoribus_fw-la plenam_fw-la concessit_fw-la potestatem_fw-la christ_n not_o peter_n much_o less_o the_o pope_n give_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o their_o successor_n fullness_n of_o power_n whereto_a accord_v saint_n cyprian_n the_o simple_a praelat_fw-la say_v christus_fw-la candem_fw-la dedit_fw-la apostolis_n omnibus_fw-la potestatem_fw-la christ_n give_v unto_o all_o his_o apostle_n the_o self_n same_o power_n bellarmine_n to_o prove_v the_o ecclesiastical_a authority_n of_o mathias_n to_o be_v undependant_a and_o not_o dependent_a of_o petex_n bring_v in_o mathias_n choose_v a_o apostle_n not_o by_o the_o apostle_n but_o by_o god_n and_o so_o of_o s._n paul_n choose_v a_o apostle_n not_o by_o man_n nor_o of_o man_n but_o of_o god_n how_o then_o can_v the_o pope_n challenge_v undependant_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n when_o he_o be_v choose_v and_o make_v pope_n &_o also_o unpope_v by_o man_n much_o inferior_a to_o the_o apostle_n if_o the_o pope_n alone_o have_v undependant_a church_n government_n to_o give_v and_o take_v ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n to_o and_o from_o who_o he_o please_v how_o be_v the_o patriarch_n of_o alexandria_n make_v equal_a unto_o he_o in_o the_o first_o nicen_n council_n can._n 6_o and_o why_o be_v the_o archbishop_n of_o constantinople_n equal_v with_o he_o in_o authority_n and_o in_o all_o thing_n except_o in_o seniority_n in_o the_o first_o council_n of_o constantinople_n cap._n 3._o and_o in_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n can._n 28_o certain_o this_o undependant_a supreme_a government_n be_v not_o acknowledge_v to_o be_v in_o anicetus_n bishop_n of_o rome_n by_o polycarpus_n who_o gainsaied_n anicetus_n in_o the_o celebration_n of_o easter_n see_v euseb_n l._n 5._o ca._n 26._o nor_o in_o victor_n who_o usurp_a authority_n over_o the_o bishop_n of_o asia_n be_v countermand_v withstand_v and_o sharp_o rebuke_v by_o irenaeus_n polycrates_n and_o other_o bishop_n in_o france_n asia_n etc._n etc._n see_v euseb_n l._n 5._o cap._n 25._o touch_v the_o jesuit_n argument_n draw_v from_o the_o king_n supreme_a govermment_n civil_a to_o conclude_v thereby_o his_o power_n to_o exercise_v all_o act_n pertain_v to_o civil_a jurisdiction_n i_o reply_v and_o say_v that_o true_a it_o be_v the_o fountain_n of_o all_o civil_a justice_n under_o god_n in_o this_o kingdom_n be_v in_o his_o majestic_a that_o he_o alone_o have_v power_n to_o constitute_v civil_a judge_n and_o according_o do_v so_o but_o our_o most_o learned_a lawyer_n and_o reverend_a judge_n will_v teach_v the_o jesuit_n that_o when_o the_o judge_n be_v so_o constitute_v by_o the_o law_n and_o custom_n of_o this_o kingdom_n it_o pertain_v to_o those_o judge_n and_o not_o to_o his_o majesty_n to_o judge_v &_o sentence_n in_o matter_n personal_a real_a or_o of_o blood_n as_o felony_n and_o treason_n equal_o between_o the_o subject_n and_o also_o between_o the_o king_n &_o his_o lubiect_n which_o cut_v in_o sunder_o the_o very_a heartstring_n of_o this_o his_o main_a argument_n for_o if_o it_o pertain_v not_o to_o the_o king_n to_o exercise_v all_o act_n of_o inferior_a civil_a government_n though_o he_o be_v the_o supreme_a civil_a governor_n in_o his_o kingdom_n a_o fortiori_fw-la it_o follow_v that_o it_o pertain_v not_o to_o his_o majesty_n to_o exercise_v all_o inferior_a act_n of_o ecclesia_fw-la sticall_a government_n though_o he_o be_v supreme_a ecclesiastical_a governor_n the_o lord_n of_o a_o manor_n to_o which_o belong_v a_o court_n baron_fw-fr may_v constitute_v a_o steward_n to_o have_v jurisdiction_n over_o his_o tenant_n in_o that_o court_n in_o set_v fyne_n in_o amerce_v etc._n etc._n yet_o the_o lord_n of_o the_o manor_n can_v execute_v that_o jurisdiction_n for_o if_o he_o set_v fyne_n or_o amerce_v it_o be_v void_a though_o that_o court_n be_v and_o be_v also_o call_v that_o lord_n court_n becan_n exam._n 194_o pag._n 194_o you_o say_v that_o although_o the_o king_n can_v excommunicate_v yet_o with_o consent_n of_o the_o order_n or_o state_n of_o the_o kingdom_n in_o parliament_n he_o may_v wake_v ecclesiastical_a law_n by_o force_n whereof_o such_o and_o such_o aught_o to_o be_v excommunicate_v what_o now_o richard_n hainric_n say_v the_o king_n by_o his_o own_o an●_n hority_n may_v make_v ecclesiastical_a law_n and_o you_o vilify_a that_o authority_n restrain_v it_o to_o the_o consent_n of_o the_o order_n in_o parliament_n tun_n detract_v too_o much_o from_o the_o primate_n &_o head_n of_o the_o church_n of_o england_n and_o here_o you_o make_v also_o a_o new_a jar_n dr._n
key_n he_o open_v to_o the_o pope_n that_o be_v remit_v his_o sin_n then_o heab_n solu_v the_o pope_n for_o wherefore_o be_v one_o excommunicate_v but_o because_o his_o sin_n be_v bind_v wherefore_o be_v one_o absolve_v but_o because_o his_o sin_n be_v remit_v if_o it_o be_v not_o in_o respect_n thereof_o the_o king_n may_v be_v say_v to_o have_v power_n to_o excommunicate_v that_o be_v to_o say_v to_o keep_v man_n from_o the_o communion_n viz._n when_o he_o commit_v some_o to_o close_a prison_n where_o neither_o any_o can_v speak_v to_o they_o nor_o they_o to_o any_o now_o therefore_o if_o the_o priest_n may_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o cause_n that_o be_v if_o he_o can_v bind_v the_o pope_n sin_n why_o may_v he_o not_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o effect_n that_o be_v why_o may_v he_o not_o excommunicate_v the_o pope_n or_o which_o with_o s._n paul_n be_v all_o one_o deliver_v he_o to_o satan_n according_a to_o that_o of_o saint_n hierome_n to_o heliodore_n of_o the_o eremitical_a life_n god_n for_o bid_v that_o i_o shall_v speak_v any_o evil_n of_o those_o who_o succeed_v the_o apostolic_a degree_n make_v the_o body_n of_o christ_n with_o their_o sacred_a mouth_n who_o have_v the_o key_n of_o the_o kingdom_n of_o heaven_n in_o sort_n judge_v before_o the_o day_n of_o judgement_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o i_o to_o sit_v before_o a_o priest_n he_o may_v if_o i_o sin_n deliver_v i_o to_o satan_n for_o the_o destruction_n of_o the_o flesh_n that_o the_o spirit_n may_v be_v save_v and_o so_o saint_n rasil_n of_o the_o solitary_a life_n cha_n 23._o peter_n inquit_fw-la amas_fw-la i_o etc._n etc._n christ_n say_v unto_o peter_n love_v thou_o i_o feed_v my_o sheep_n and_o in_o like_a sort_n unto_o all_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n he_o give_v the_o same_o power_n a_o token_n whereof_o be_v this_o that_o all_o bind_v and_o loose_v equal_o as_o well_o as_o peter_n if_o every_o pastor_n and_o doctor_n bind_v and_o loose_v equal_o as_o well_o as_o peter_n why_o not_o in_o court_n exterior_a as_o well_o as_o peter_n since_o the_o sheep_n be_v commit_v unto_o they_o as_o well_o as_o unto_o peter_n the_o minor_a proposition_n i_o also_o deny_v here_o as_o i_o do_v in_o the_o english_a concord_n that_o be_v i_o deny_v that_o any_o bishop_n have_v power_n to_o throw_v the_o king_n out_o of_o the_o church_n or_o to_o excommunicate_v he_o according_a to_o canonical_a excommunication_n so_o proper_o call_v and_o define_v and_o further_o i_o deny_v that_o the_o suppose_a excommunication_n of_o theodosius_n by_o ambrose_n be_v canonical_a excommunication_n yield_v there_o some_o reason_n thereof_o whereunto_o though_o very_o material_a this_o silly_a jesuit_n answer_v not_o one_o word_n and_o yet_o with_o jesuitical_a that_o be_v with_o brazen_a face_n be_v bold_a to_o set_v before_o thou_o christian_n reader_n his_o loathsome_a colewort_n twice_o yea_o thrice_o sodden_a ❧_o becans_n jar_n xi_o question_n whether_o the_o king_n may_v be_v judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n in_o the_o church_n 1._o controversy_n that_o arise_v in_o the_o church_n be_v of_o two_o sort_n some_o be_v about_o faith_n and_o religion_n other_o be_v concern_v ecclesiastical_a affair_n the_o former_a of_o these_o question_n then_o be_v whether_o the_o king_n by_o virtue_n of_o his_o primacy_n be_v supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n which_o pertain_v unto_o faith_n and_o religion_n master_n salclebridge_n say_v be_v be_v pag._n 163._o in_o these_o word_n sic_fw-la luce_fw-fr clarius_fw-la est_fw-la christianos_n principes_fw-la cum_fw-la laud_fw-la controversias_fw-la fidei_fw-la dijudicasse_fw-la &_o diremisse_a etiam_fw-la in_o universalibus_fw-la octo_fw-la concilijs_fw-la etc._n etc._n so_o as_o it_o be_v more_o clear_a than_o the_o sun_n that_o christian_a prince_n with_o praise_n have_v judge_v of_o and_o decide_v controversy_n of_o faith_n and_o that_o in_o eight_o general_n counsel_n etc._n etc._n which_o be_v as_o much_o to_o say_v in_o the_o first_o of_o nice_a the_o first_o of_o constantinople_n that_o of_o ephesus_n chalcedon_n the_o second_o three_o and_o four_o of_o constantinople_n and_o the_o second_o of_o nice_a wherein_o diverse_a controversy_n concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n be_v judge_v of_o and_o decide_v especial_o cuncern_v the_o divinitis_fw-la of_o christ_n against_o the_o heretic_n arius_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n against_o macedonius_n of_o one_o person_n of_o christ_n against_o nestorius_n of_o two_o nature_n in_o christ_n against_o eutiches_n and_o dioscorus_n and_o so_o of_o other_o all_o these_o controversy_n say_v master_n saclebridge_n be_v judge_v of_o and_o decide_v by_o king_n and_o emperor_n 2._o master_n tooker_n now_o he_o affirm_v the_o quite_o contrary_a who_o by_o no_o mean_n will_v have_v king_n or_o emperor_n to_o be_v judge_n of_o controversy_n of_o faith_n for_o thus_o he_o write_v pag._n 3._o of_o his_o book_n olere_fw-la autem_fw-la malitiam_fw-la ac_fw-la clamitare_fw-la audaciam_fw-la tuam_fw-la illud_fw-la videtur_fw-la cùm_fw-la regem_fw-la caput_fw-la ecelesiae_fw-la primatemque_fw-la confingas_fw-la omniumque_fw-la causarum_fw-la &_o controversiarum_fw-la quae_fw-la ad_fw-la sidem_fw-la &_o religionem_fw-la pertinent_a iudicem_fw-la tribuas_fw-la it_o may_v seem_v to_o savour_n of_o malice_n &_o cry_v out_o upon_o your_o sauciness_n when_o as_o you_o fain_o the_o king_n to_o be_v head_n of_o the_o church_n &_o judge_n of_o all_o cause_n and_o controversy_n which_o pertain_v unto_o faith_n and_o religion_n etc._n etc._n and_o again_o pag._n 50._o rexin_n svo_fw-la regno_fw-la omnibus_fw-la superior_a sit_fw-la nullisubditus_fw-la fidei_fw-la iudex_fw-la no_n appelletur_fw-la quidem_fw-la although_o the_o king_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n be_v above_o all_o &_o subject_n to_o none_o yet_o he_o may_v not_o be_v call_v in_o any_o case_n the_o jadge_n of_o our_o faith_n etc._n etc._n and_o pag._n 313._o reges_fw-la christiani_n non_fw-la sunt_fw-la fidei_fw-la ac_fw-la religionis_fw-la judices_fw-la christian_n king_n be_v not_o judge_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n 3._o so_o as_o if_o now_o in_o england_n there_o shall_v chance_v to_o arise_v a_o dissension_n or_o debate_n concern_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n or_o religion_n as_o for_o example_n concern_v the_o real_a presence_n of_o christ_n in_o the_o eucharist_n what_o shall_v your_o academic_n here_o do_v to_o who_o shall_v your_o citizen_n and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o subject_n have_v recourse_n shall_v they_o go_v unto_o the_o king_n as_o judge_v in_o this_o point_n and_o ask_v his_o sentence_n &_o determination_n master_n tooker_n you_o see_v will_v not_o go_v to_o the_o king_n what_o shall_v they_o go_v to_o some_o other_o judge_n then_o but_o master_n salclebridge_n he_o will_v admit_v no_o other_o what_o then_o be_v best_a to_o be_v do_v in_o this_o case_n true_o even_o that_o which_o hitherto_o have_v be_v do_v in_o the_o debate_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n to_o wit_n always_o to_o brawl_v and_o jar_n thereabouts_o and_o never_o end_v the_o controversy_n and_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n in_o very_a deed_n no_o other_o but_o for_o that_o some_o think_v one_o thing_n some_o another_o and_o they_o can_v or_o rather_o will_v not_o find_v out_o the_o certain_a and_o true_a judge_n who_o can_v decide_v the_o matter_n and_o this_o be_v the_o property_n of_o heretic_n 4._o the_o other_o question_n be_v whether_o the_o king_n be_v judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n that_o concern_v other_o ecclesiastical_a affair_n master_n salclebridge_n say_v that_o he_o be_v pag._n 165._o in_o these_o word_n audin_n '_o controversias_fw-la episcopales_fw-la ab_fw-la imperatore_n diremptas_fw-la do_v you_o not_o hear_v sir_n that_o episcopal_a controversy_n have_v be_v decide_v by_o emperor_n etc._n etc._n be_v hat_n ma._n tooker_n think_v of_o this_o point_n be_v not_o well_o know_v for_o sometime_o he_o affirm_v it_o as_o for_o example_n pg._n 24_o thus_o nemini_fw-la dubium_fw-la est_fw-la quin_fw-la in_o primitiva_fw-la ecclesia_fw-la de_fw-la rebus_fw-la &_o personis_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la ●us_fw-la dicerent_fw-la imperatores_fw-la no_o man_n can_v doub_v but_o that_o in_o the_o primitive_a church_n emperor_n judge_v of_o matter_n and_o person_n ecclesiastical_a etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o pag._n 23._o he_o seem_v to_o deny_v it_o non_fw-la est_fw-la princeps_fw-la supra_fw-la res_fw-la sed_fw-la supra_fw-la personas_fw-la the_o prince_n say_v he_o be_v not_o above_o the_o matter_n but_o abone_n the_o person_n etc._n etc._n and_o then_o again_o pag._n 49._o rex_fw-la in_o svo_fw-la regno_fw-la supremus_fw-la est_fw-la non_fw-la supra_fw-la res_fw-la sed_fw-la supra_fw-la homines_fw-la the_o king_n in_o his_o own_o kingdom_n be_v the_o chief_a or_o principal_n but_o yet_o not_o chief_a over_o thing_n but_o over_o man_n and_o thus_o you_o see_v every_o where_o nothing_o but_o jar_v and_o disagreement_n english_a concord_n both_o doctor_n tooker_n and_o hainric_n deny_v the_o king_n to_o be_v supreme_a judge_n in_o
faith_n touch_v the_o real_a presence_n there_o be_v no_o discord_n among_o we_o but_o therein_o be_v discord_n endless_a among_o the_o papist_n as_o in_o the_o other_o point_v here_o mention_v though_o this_o jesuit_n with_o brazen_a face_n deny_v the_o same_o if_o any_o man_n have_v a_o honest_a and_o good_a hart_n doubt_v in_o any_o matter_n of_o faith_n our_o king_n have_v here_o put_v that_o man_n in_o the_o king_n of_o heaven_n his_o high_a way_n to_o put_v he_o our_o of_o doubt_n viz._n by_o send_v he_o to_o the_o law_n 8._o esay_n 8._o and_o to_o the_o gospel_n thirth_o fly_v we_o and_o not_o to_o our_o king_n in_o controversy_n of_o faith_n but_o miserable_a papist_n who_o leave_v the_o law_n &_o gospel_n as_o dead_a ink_n whither_o shall_v they_o fly_v in_o their_o controversy_n of_o faith_n to_o the_o pope_n belike_o as_o the_o thomist_n and_o scotist_n do_v the_o case_n be_v this_o there_o fall_v out_o between_o those_o two_o sect_n this_o odious_a quarrel_n whether_o the_o virgin_n mary_n be_v conceive_v in_o sin_n or_o no._n the_o one_o side_n say_z yea_o the_o other_o faction_n cry_v nay_o their_o faction_n increase_v the_o school_n be_v inflame_v &_o the_o world_n trouble_v no_o doctor_n no_o coucell_n be_v able_a to_o accord_v they_o the_o scotist_n allege_v for_o themselves_o the_o council_n of_o basil_n the_o thomist_n say_v that_o council_n be_v disorderly_o summon_v and_o therefore_o unlawful_a in_o the_o midd_n of_o these_o broil_n pope_n sixtus_n take_v upon_o he_o as_o supreme_a judge_n to_o determine_v that_o controversy_n in_o faith_n between_o they_o when_o all_o the_o world_n expect_v his_o resolution_n desirous_a to_o be_v satisfy_v in_o that_o question_n the_o pope_n command_v both_o the_o thomist_n and_o the_o scotist_n to_o depart_v home_o and_o to_o dispute_v no_o more_o of_o that_o matter_n and_o so_o leave_v they_o as_o doubtful_a as_o he_o find_v they_o can_v not_o a_o supreme_a judge_n make_v of_o clout_n have_v do_v the_o office_n of_o a_o supreme_a judge_n therein_o as_o well_o as_o pope_n sixtus_n that_o be_v to_o say_v have_v do_v just_a nothing_o last_o whereas_o this_o trifle_a sophister_n frame_v his_o childish_a argument_n papist_n writer_n jar_n in_o many_o point_n therefore_o english_a writer_n jar_n not_o in_o the_o point_n of_o their_o king_n primacy_n upon_o the_o anvil_n of_o his_o own_o fantasy_n only_o and_o so_o frame_v will_v father_n it_o upon_o i_o let_v his_o fatherhood_n learn_v by_o this_o reply_n that_o my_o only_a scope_n therein_o be_v in_o urge_v he_o to_o the_o quick_a by_o those_o object_v jar_n as_o it_o be_v by_o so_o many_o incision_n of_o his_o basilica_n vain_a to_o give_v a_o vent_n unto_o that_o fault_n fiery_a scoff_a humour_n of_o he_o at_o our_o seem_a jar_n which_o in_o his_o plethoric_n body_n be_v so_o redundant_fw-la and_o put●_n ify_v in_o he_o as_o also_o to_o give_v he_o to_o understand_v how_o pat_o those_o word_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n fall_v upon_o his_o head_n u-5_a math._n 7._o u-5_a viz._n hypocrite_n first_o cast_v out_o the_o beam_n out_o of_o thy_o own_o eye_n and_o then_o shall_v thou_o see_v clear_o to_o cast_v out_o the_o mote_n out_o of_o thy_o brother_n eye_n their_o popish_a jar_n be_v beame-iarre_n our_o english_a seem_v jar_n be_v less_o than_o mote-iarre_n in_o truth_n they_o be_v no_o jar_n at_o all_o but_o true_a concord_n and_o thus_o be_v his_o froth_n once_o again_o scatter_v to_o nothing_o ❧_o becans_n jar_n xii_o question_n whence_o and_o by_o what_o title_n have_v the_o king_n his_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n 1._o the_o sense_n hereof_o be_v whether_o the_o king_n precise_o in_o that_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a king_n have_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n the_o former_a part_n of_o this_o point_n ma._n thomson_n seem_v to_o approve_v pag_n 78._o where_o he_o say_v omnes_fw-la principes_fw-la etiam_fw-la pagani_n obiectiuè_fw-fr habent_fw-la supreman_n potestatem_fw-la in_o omnes_fw-la omnino_fw-la personas_fw-la svorum_fw-la subditorum_fw-la &_o generatim_fw-la in_o res_fw-la ipsas_fw-la sive_fw-la civiles_fw-la sint_fw-la sive_fw-la sacrae_fw-la ut_fw-la in_o cultu_fw-la divino_fw-la &_o religione_fw-la procuranda_fw-la saltem_fw-la quoad_fw-la modum_fw-la &_o exercitium_fw-la all_o prince_n yea_o even_o those_o that_o be_v pagan_n have_v for_o the_o object_n of_o their_o supreme_a power_n all_o manner_n of_o person_n that_o be_v their_o subject_n and_o general_o all_o thing_n whether_o civil_a or_o sacred_a as_o in_o advaunce_v god_n honour_n &_o religion_n at_o leastwise_o so_o far_o forth_o as_o belong_v to_o the_o manner_n and_o exercise_n thereof_o etc._n etc._n and_o then_o again_o pag._n 94._o primatus_fw-la est_fw-la regium_fw-la bonum_fw-la quod_fw-la censurâ_fw-la tolli_fw-la non_fw-la potest_fw-la nec_fw-la est_fw-la absurdum_fw-la regem_fw-la velut_fw-la ethnicum_fw-la esse_fw-la primatem_fw-la ecolesiae_fw-la primacy_n be_v a_o certain_a kingly_a right_n that_o can_v be_v take_v away_o by_o censure_n nor_o be_v it_o absurd_a that_o a_o king_n as_o he_o be_v a_o ethnic_n be_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o yet_o further_o in_o the_o same_o place_n rex_fw-la ethnicus_fw-la cum_fw-la christo_fw-la initiatur_fw-la non_fw-la acquirit_fw-la primatú_fw-it de_fw-it novo_fw-la a_o ethnic_n king_n say_v he_o when_o as_o he_o be_v instruct_v in_o christ_n or_o the_o christian_a faith_n do_v not_o purchase_v any_o new_a primacy_n etc._n etc._n to_o who_o consent_v ma._n burhill_n pag._n 251._o thus_o rex_fw-la titulo_fw-la registemporalis_fw-la potest_fw-la sibi_fw-la vindicare_fw-la &_o assumere_fw-la primatum_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la a_o king_n by_o the_o title_n of_o a_o temporal_a king_n may_v claim_v unto_o himself_o and_o take_v upon_o he_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n etc._n etc._n and_o pag._n 267._o rex_fw-la etsi_fw-la iustissimè_fw-la excommunicatus_fw-la non_fw-la amittit_fw-la primatum_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la ecclesiasticis_fw-la a_o king_n although_o he_o be_v most_o just_o excommunicate_v yet_o do_v he_o not_o loose_v his_o primacy_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n etc._n etc._n 2._o my_o l._n of_o ely_n now_o he_o teach_v we_o a_o quite_o contrary_a lesson_n in_o his_o tortura_fw-la torti_n pa._n 39_o where_o he_o aver_v that_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o king_n not_o because_o he_o be_v a_o king_n but_o because_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a king_n and_o therefore_o ethnic_a king_n have_v no_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n so_o long_o as_o they_o remain_v ethnic_n but_o do_v then_o receive_v the_o say_a primacy_n when_o they_o be_v make_v christian_n and_o loose_v the_o same_o again_o also_o when_o they_o be_v excommunicate_v his_o word_n be_v these_o an_fw-mi non_fw-la regi_fw-la ethnico_fw-la praestare_fw-la fidem_fw-la fas_fw-la imo_fw-la nefas_fw-la non_fw-la praestare_fw-la in_o ethnico_fw-la enim_fw-la est_fw-la vera_fw-la potestas_fw-la temporalis_fw-la idque_fw-la sine_fw-la ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la potestarem_fw-la ecclesiasticam_fw-la be_v it_o not_o lawful_a then_o to_o yield_v allegiance_n to_o a_o ethnic_n king_n nay_o rather_o not_o to_o yield_v it_o be_v a_o wickedness_n for_o in_o a_o ethnic_n there_o be_v true_a temporal_a power_n and_o that_o without_o respect_n to_o ecclesiastical_a power_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o little_a after_o rex_fw-la quiviscùm_fw-la de_fw-la ethnico_fw-la christianus_n fit_a non_fw-la perdit_fw-la terrenum_fw-la ius_fw-la sed_fw-la acquitit_fw-la ius_fw-la nowm_fw-la itidem_fw-la cùm_fw-la de_fw-la christiano_n sit_fw-la sicut_fw-la ethnicus_fw-la vigoresententiae_fw-la amitut_o nowm_fw-la ius_fw-la quod_fw-la acquisierat_fw-la sed_fw-la retinet_fw-la terrenum_fw-la ius_fw-la in_o temporalibus_fw-la quod_fw-la suerat_fw-la illi_fw-la proprium_fw-la priusquam_fw-la christianus_n fieret_fw-la etc._n etc._n every_o king_n when_o as_o of_o a_o ethnic_n he_o become_v a_o christian_n do_v not_o loose_v his_o earthly_a right_n but_o get_v a_o new_a right_n and_o so_o in_o like_a manner_n when_o as_o of_o a_o christian_a he_o become_v as_o a_o ethnic_n to_o wit_n by_o excommunication_n then_o by_o vigour_n of_o the_o sentence_n he_o lose_v that_o new_a right_n which_o he_o have_v get_v but_o yet_o notwithstanding_o he_o still_o retain_v his_o earthly_a right_a intemporall_a thing_n which_o be_v proper_a unto_o he_o before_o he_o become_v a_o christian_a etc._n etc._n 3._o so_o as_o according_a to_o the_o opinion_n of_o ma._n thomson_n and_o ma._n buthill_n it_o follow_v that_o all_o king_n whether_o christian_n or_o ethnic_n or_o of_o whatsoever_o other_o sect_n or_o religion_n they_o be_v be_v primate_fw-la of_o the_o church_n in_o their_o own_o kingdom_n therefore_o all_o englishman_n and_o scot_n who_o live_v at_o constantinople_n be_v by_o their_o sentence_n subject_a to_o the_o turk_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n as_o also_o they_o that_o live_v in_o spain_n be_v subject_a to_o king_n philip_n and_o they_o at_o rome_n to_o the_o pope_n &_o so_o to_o other_o in_o other_o place_n what_o now_o shall_v these_o man_n do_v
if_o the_o turk_n shall_v command_v they_o to_o follow_v the_o alcoran_n the_o king_n of_o spain_n force_v they_o to_o hear_v mass_n the_o pope_n to_o pray_v for_o the_o dead_a and_o some_o heathen_a king_n perhaps_o compel_v they_o to_o idolatry_n shall_v they_o then_o obey_v these_o prince_n command_n but_o than_o shall_v they_o do_v against_o their_o conscience_n shall_v they_o refuse_v to_o obey_v then_o farewell_n primacy_n of_o the_o church_n perhaps_o they_o will_v answer_v that_o they_o will_v obey_v when_o they_o think_v good_a shall_v therefore_o subject_n be_v judge_n of_o their_o king_n may_v then_o the_o catholic_n in_o england_n say_v after_o this_o manner_n if_o it_o please_v your_o majesty_n in_o this_o point_n we_o think_v good_a to_o obey_v your_o majesty_n command_n but_o in_o that_o not_o english_a concord_n in_o this_o place_n either_o the_o jesuit_n be_v beside_o himself_o or_o else_o he_o have_v much_o forget_v himself_o for_o every_o where_n in_o his_o other_o question_n he_o affir_n m_v that_o no_o king_n either_o pagan_a or_o christian_n have_v any_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o here_o he_o enquire_v from_o whence_o and_o by_o what_o title_n he_o have_v his_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n therefore_o by_o his_o own_o learning_n he_o beat_v his_o brain_n to_o find_v the_o original_n of_o nothing_o if_o he_o take_v away_o this_o supposition_n that_o the_o king_n have_v a_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n either_o precise_o as_o he_o be_v a_o king_n or_o else_o because_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a king_n he_o be_v a_o foolish_a sophister_n for_o his_o dispute_n run_v not_o thus_o the_o king_n if_o he_o have_v primacy_n of_o the_o church_n he_o have_v it_o either_o as_o he_o be_v a_o king_n or_o as_o a_o christian_a king_n but_o he_o have_v it_o in_o neither_o of_o the_o say_v two_o respect_n therefore_o he_o have_v it_o not_o at_o all_o if_o he_o let_v that_o supposition_n stand_v then_o because_o it_o be_v manifest_a that_o our_o most_o gracious_a king_n james_n be_v by_o birth_n a_o king_n and_o by_o religion_n a_o christian_a king_n he_o be_v a_o brainsick_a wrangler_n for_o since_o by_o his_o supposal_n here_o the_o king_n have_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n what_o matter_n be_v it_o whether_o he_o have_v it_o as_o he_o be_v a_o king_n or_o as_o he_o be_v a_o christian_a king_n if_o so_o be_v he_o have_v it_o at_o all_o wherefore_o there_o be_v no_o cause_n that_o we_o shall_v much_o stand_v upon_o this_o idle_a and_o beggarly_a question_n wherein_o be_v only_o a_o shadow_n of_o a_o question_n furhermore_o i_o will_v have_v the_o jesuit_n understand_v that_o this_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n he_o stand_v upon_o be_v not_o derive_v from_o the_o title_n of_o a_o king_n but_o from_o god_n himself_o for_o moses_n be_v adorn_v with_o this_o dignity_n in_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n and_o yet_o we_o never_o read_v that_o he_o be_v style_v with_o the_o title_n of_o a_o king_n but_o certain_o that_o you_o may_v know_v here_o be_v no_o jar_n or_o odds_o among_o we_o respect_v the_o main_a the_o worthy_a bishop_n of_o ely_n in_o his_o tortura_fw-la pag._n 377._o have_v sound_o and_o according_a to_o the_o very_a truth_n manifest_v that_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n belong_v not_o to_o ethnic_n king_n as_o ethnic_a but_o unto_o king_n as_o they_o be_v christian_a king_n or_o defender_n of_o the_o divine_a truth_n his_o word_n be_v these_o et_fw-la sunt_fw-la ista_fw-la quidem_fw-la ex_fw-la testamento_fw-la veteri_fw-la satis_fw-la solida_fw-la fundamenta_fw-la non_fw-la quod_fw-la ad_fw-la reges_fw-la infideles_fw-la primatum_fw-la pertinere_fw-la probent_fw-la etc._n etc._n and_o those_o thing_n before_o relate_v out_o of_o the_o old_a testament_n be_v so_o solid_a and_o substantial_a ground_n as_o tortus_fw-la shall_v never_o be_v able_a to_o shake_v not_o that_o they_o prove_v this_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n to_o belong_v to_o pagan_a king_n no_o sure_o we_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n give_v no_o more_o unto_o such_o prince_n than_o be_v give_v in_o the_o old_a unto_o ahasucrus_n and_o nabuchodonosor_n wherefore_o in_o this_o point_n tortus_fw-la be_v beside_o himself_o but_o yet_o if_o caesar_n become_v a_o christian_n as_o in_o constantine_n then_o present_o he_o have_v the_o same_o right_n over_o the_o church_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n which_o josias_n have_v in_o the_o old_a reditus_fw-la statim_fw-la fit_a ad_fw-la iura_fw-la regum_fw-la israel_n there_o be_v a_o present_a possession_n of_o the_o ancient_a right_n of_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n as_o soon_o as_o ever_o they_o be_v make_v king_n of_o the_o israel_n of_o god_n &_o give_v up_o their_o name_n to_o christ._n wherefore_o this_o be_v not_o our_o purpose_n that_o the_o persecuter_n of_o the_o church_n such_o as_o be_v cain_n and_o tiberius_n shall_v be_v the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n who_o will_v not_o receive_v that_o title_n although_o a_o man_n will_v give_v it_o they_o because_o they_o employ_v their_o whole_a strength_n to_o ruin_n and_o root_v up_o the_o church_n but_o let_v they_o then_o take_v superiority_n in_o the_o church_n when_o they_o be_v unfainedlie_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n thereof_o there_o be_v due_a to_o caesar_n the_o thing_n of_o caesar_n and_o there_o belong_v to_o the_o christian_a caesar_n whatsoever_o duty_n under_o the_o old_a law_n be_v either_o pay_v or_o payable_a by_o the_o people_n of_o god_n to_o their_o king_n unto_o who_o be_v then_o due_a and_o yield_v all_o manner_n of_o subjection_n and_o obedience_n not_o only_o in_o the_o affair_n of_o the_o covill_a state_n but_o also_o of_o the_o church_n these_o thing_n so_o express_v be_v very_o true_a and_o fit_v our_o purpose_n for_o in_o they_o we_o have_v learn_v that_o pagan_a king_n as_o they_o be_v pagan_n have_v no_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n but_o what_o if_o almighty_a god_n so_o guide_v and_o govern_v the_o heart_n of_o pagan_a king_n as_o that_o they_o will_v stand_v for_o the_o worship_n of_o god_n against_o error_n and_o make_v law_n for_o the_o same_o let_v the_o jesuit_n tell_v i_o in_o that_o case_n whether_o god_n do_v not_o hind_n our_o conscience_n to_o obey_v pagan_a prince_n and_o let_v he_o take_v heed_n how_o he_o deny_v it_o lest_o bellarmine_n fall_v on_o his_o jack_n for_o it_o because_o he_o have_v resolve_v the_o matter_n in_o the_o very_a same_o word_n de_fw-fr pont_n rom._n lib._n 5._o cap._n 2._o but_o yet_o if_o he_o doubt_v lot_n he_o resort_v to_o saint_n augustine_n in_o his_o 166._o epistle_n to_o the_o donatist_n who_o write_v on_o this_o manner_n quando_fw-la imperatores_fw-la veritatem_fw-la tenent_fw-la etc._n etc._n when_o emperor_n stand_v for_o the_o truth_n and_o give_v out_o a_o commandment_n for_o the_o same_o against_o error_n whosoever_o shall_v despise_v the_o same_o increase_v his_o own_o damnation_n for_o even_o among_o man_n he_o suffer_v punishment_n but_o before_o god_n he_o shall_v not_o dare_v to_o appear_v which_o refuse_v to_o do_v that_o which_o truth_n itself_o command_v by_o the_o hart_n of_o the_o king_n and_o according_a to_o this_o opinion_n our_o reverend_a b._n in_o his_o tortura_fw-la torti_n pag._n 381._o most_o true_o write_v quodcunque_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la religionis_fw-la etc._n etc._n whatsoever_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n do_v in_o matter_n of_o religion_n neither_o do_v they_o anything_o without_o commendation_n wherein_o they_o have_v power_n &_o authority_n to_o enact_v law_n as_o that_o god_n shall_v not_o be_v blaspheme_v which_o you_o will_v not_o deny_v the_o king_n of_o babel_n also_o do_v dan._n 3.29_o and_o the_o king_n of_o nineuch_n jonas_n 3.7_o that_o with_o a_o public_a proclaim_v fast_o god_n almighty_a may_v be_v satisfy_v andaccord_v to_o this_o sentence_n write_v saint_n augustine_n many_o year_n before_o he_o in_o his_o 50._o epist_n to_o bonifacius_n the_o soldier_n sed_fw-la illud_fw-la propheticum_fw-la iam_fw-la impletur_fw-la psal_n 2._o et_fw-la nunc_fw-la reges_fw-la seruite_fw-la domino_fw-la in_o timore_fw-la etc._n etc._n but_o now_o be_v the_o prophetical_a oracle_n fulfil_v which_o speak_v in_o the_o 2._o psalm_n now_o o_o ice_o king_n serve_v the_o lord_n in_o fear_n and_o how_o shall_v king_n serve_v the_o lord_n in_o fear_n unless_o they_o prohibit_v and_o punish_v those_o enormity_n with_o religious_a severity_n and_o justice_n which_o be_v daily_o commit_v against_o the_o lord_n will_v and_o commandment_n and_o because_o he_o be_v a_o king_n he_o serve_v as_o a_o servant_n by_o make_v law_n with_o force_n and_o vigour_n to_o command_v thing_n that_o be_v righteous_a and_o to_o forbid_v the_o contrary_n even_o as_o ezekias_n serve_v by_o destroy_v the_o temple_n of_o idol_n and_o cut_v down_o the_o grove_n even_o as_o king_n losias_o serve_v by_o do_v the_o like_a even_o as_o the_o king_n of_o
niniuch_o serve_v by_o compel_v the_o whole_a city_n to_o pacify_v the_o lord_n even_o as_o king_n darius_n serve_v by_o break_v the_o idol_n in_o pecces_fw-la even_o as_o king_n nabuchodonosor_n serve_v by_o make_v a_o godly_a and_o laudable_a law_n that_o whosoever_o blaspheme_v the_o god_n of_o sydrach_n he_o shall_v be_v destroy_v and_o his_o house_n raze_v in_o this_o therefore_o king_n serve_v the_o lord_n in_o that_o they_o be_v king_n when_o they_o do_v those_o thing_n for_o his_o service_n which_o they_o can_v do_v but_o as_o they_o be_v king_n if_o therefore_o the_o jesuit_n have_v serious_o know_v how_o to_o distinguish_v these_o thing_n he_o may_v have_v acknowledge_v that_o master_n burhill_n and_o master_n thomson_n agree_v with_o the_o reverend_a bishop_n in_o this_o point_n especial_o when_o master_n thomson_n in_o pag._n 78._o write_v thus_o express_o and_o distinct_o omnes_fw-la principes_fw-la etiam_fw-la pagani_fw-la etc._n etc._n all_o king_n yea_o very_o pagan_a king_n objective_o have_v supreme_a power_n over_o all_o the_o person_n of_o their_o subject_n both_o in_o sacred_a and_o civil_a thing_n especial_o to_o attemper_v their_o measure_n and_o permit_v their_o exercise_n which_o thing_n be_v witness_v by_o the_o chronicle_n of_o all_o nation_n although_o the_o pagan_n use_v that_o their_o power_n against_o the_o lord_n yet_o be_v it_o a_o fault_n of_o the_o man_n abuse_v their_o power_n give_v they_o of_o god_n to_o a_o good_a end_n and_o not_o any_o fault_n of_o the_o power_n at_o all_o but_o yet_o by_o a_o far_o more_o special_a regard_n do_v this_o power_n in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n of_o old_a belong_v to_o the_o good_a king_n of_o israel_n and_o now_o also_o to_o christian_a prince_n for_o they_o as_o bce_v of_o the_o lewish_a synagogue_n and_o these_o as_o be_v of_o the_o church_n have_v a_o great_a and_o more_o special_a right_n in_o all_o cause_n of_o the_o church_n then_o if_o they_o be_v mere_o and_o only_o king_n wherefore_o in_o one_o respect_v it_o be_v say_v to_o cyrus_n pastor_n incusestu_fw-ge thou_o be_v my_o shepherd_n and_o in_o another_o respect_n to_o david_n tu_fw-la pasces_fw-la populum_fw-la meum_fw-la israel_n thou_o shall_v feed_v my_o people_n israel_n which_o thing_n iremember_v our_o reverend_a bishop_n have_v admonish_v in_o another_o place_n and_o speak_v to_o becan_n himself_o pag._n 94._o he_o conclude_v with_o these_o word_n haec_fw-la facilia_fw-la sunt_fw-la intellectu_fw-la &_o miror_fw-la te_fw-la tantum_fw-la theologum_fw-la hic_fw-la haesisse_fw-la these_o thing_n say_v he_o be_v easy_a to_o be_v understand_v and_o i_o can_v but_o wonder_n that_o becane_n who_o be_v magnify_v by_o the_o papist_n for_o so_o great_a a_o divine_a shall_v fail_v in_o a_o point_n of_o such_o facility_n here_o you_o may_v perceive_v reader_n that_o there_o be_v a_o constant_a english_a concord_n and_o no_o jar_n among_o we_o at_o all_o wherein_o these_o two_o thing_n offer_v themselves_o to_o be_v consider_v first_o the_o logic_n and_o second_o the_o plainness_n or_o rather_o ignorance_n of_o this_o jesuit_n or_o at_o the_o least_o a_o jesuitical_a jar_n or_o the_o primacy_n of_o king_n establish_v by_o the_o jesuit_n themselves_o 1._o thus_o he_o reason_v out_o of_o master_n thomsons_n and_o master_n burhills_n opinion_n all_o king_n yea_o popish_a and_o pagan_a have_v a_o primacy_n in_o their_o kingdom_n ergo_fw-la say_v the_o jesuit_n it_o must_v needs_o follow_v that_o all_o person_n live_v in_o those_o kingdom_n be_v bind_v to_o do_v all_o thing_n though_o never_o so_o wicked_a which_o be_v by_o they_o command_v be_v this_o the_o divinity_n of_o the_o jesuit_n math._n 23._o 2._o our_o saviour_n speak_v thus_o to_o his_o disciple_n the_o scribe_n and_o pharisee_n sit_v in_o moses_n chair_n all_o thing_n therefore_o which_o they_o command_v you_o to_o do_v that_o observe_v and_o do_v act_n 4.18_o there_o the_o same_o pharisee_n out_o of_o the_o same_o chair_n forbid_v the_o apostle_n that_o they_o speak_v and_o preach_v any_o more_o in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n therefore_o may_v not_o the_o jesuit_n as_o logical_o conclude_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v bind_v to_o obey_v they_o and_o than_o no_o more_o teach_n in_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n but_o peter_n and_o john_n answer_v they_o other_o wise_a whether_o it_o be_v more_o just_a we_o obey_v god_n or_o man_n judge_v you_o and_o after_o this_o manner_n write_v isidore_n in_o the_o canon_n law_n si_fw-mi be_v qui_fw-la praeest_fw-la 11._o q._n 3._o out_o of_o basil_n st_n be_v qui_fw-la praeest_fw-la prohibet_fw-la vobis_fw-la quod_fw-la a_o domino_fw-la est_fw-la proeceptum_fw-la etc._n etc._n if_o he_o that_o sit_v chief_a forbid_v you_o that_o which_o be_v command_v of_o the_o lord_n or_o on_o the_o contrary_a command_v that_o which_o be_v forbid_v of_o the_o lord_n let_v he_o be_v accurse_v of_o all_o they_o that_o love_n god_n and_o reckon_v a_o false_a witness_n and_o sacrilegious_a person_n the_o roman_a catholic_n of_o venice_n of_o sorbona_n &_o many_o other_o noble-menan_a france_n acknowledge_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n in_o the_o church_n but_o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v command_v they_o to_o become_v his_o subject_n in_o temporal_a thing_n etiam_fw-la in_o ordine_fw-la ad_fw-la spiritualia_fw-la in_o behalf_n of_o spiritual_a cause_n or_o if_o he_o shall_v authorise_v the_o alcoran_n and_o command_v they_o to_o follow_v it_o will_v they_o think_v you_o obey_v his_o will_n then_o must_v they_o do_v against_o their_o conscience_n if_o they_o do_v not_o obey_v he_o then_o what_o shall_v become_v of_o the_o pope_n primacy_n i_o will_v beat_v you_o with_o the_o scourge_n of_o your_o own_o tongue_n perhaps_o they_o will_v answer_v they_o will_v obey_v when_o they_o think_v good_a shall_v therefore_o the_o papislicall_a catholic_n in_o france_n and_o in_o venice_n take_v up_o this_o say_n here_o o_o pope_n we_o think_v good_a to_o obey_v your_o holiness_n command_v in_o this_o point_n and_o not_o in_o that_o and_o then_o farewell_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n thus_o much_o of_o the_o logic_n of_o becane_n now_o for_o his_o plainness_n or_o plain_a ignorance_n these_o be_v the_o word_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n in_o tortura_fw-la torti_n pag._n 39_o dominia_fw-la non_fw-la fundantur_fw-la in_o fide_fw-la sic_fw-la infidelitate_fw-la non_fw-la evertuntur_fw-la quin_fw-la rex_fw-la quinis_fw-la cum_fw-la de_fw-fr ethnice_n christianus_n fit_a non_fw-la perdit_fw-la ius_fw-la terrenum_fw-la sed_fw-la acquirit_fw-la nowm_fw-la government_n and_o principality_n be_v not_o found_v upon_o believe_v and_o therefore_o be_v not_o overthrow_v by_o infidelity_n but_o when_o any_o king_n be_v make_v a_o christian_a of_o a_o pagan_a he_o lose_v not_o the_o earthly_a right_n he_o have_v before_o but_o acquire_v a_o new_a right_n thus_o far_o our_o worthy_a bishop_n now_o say_v the_o jefait_n in_o these_o word_n the_o chaplain_n teach_v that_o pagan_a king_n have_v no_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n but_o they_o receive_v it_o by_o their_o conversion_n to_o christianity_n but_o i_o say_v that_o these_o be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n only_o but_o before_o he_o of_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n de_fw-fr roman_n pont_n lib_fw-la 5._o cap._n 2._o et_fw-la 3._o dominium_fw-la non_fw-la fundatur_fw-la in_o gratia_fw-la aut_fw-la fide_fw-la christus_fw-la non_fw-la abstulit_fw-la regna_fw-la ijs_fw-la quorum_fw-la erant_fw-la etc._n etc._n lordship_n and_o principality_n be_v not_o ground_v on_o grace_n or_o believe_v christ_n take_v not_o away_o kingdom_n frons_fw-la they_o to_o who_o they_o belong_v for_o he_o come_v not_o to_o destroy_v thing_n well_o establish_v but_o to_o perfect_v they_o therefore_o when_o a_o king_n be_v make_v a_o christian_a which_o be_v a_o pagan_a he_o lose_v not_o his_o earthly_a kingdom_n which_o he_o have_v obtain_v by_o right_a but_o acquire_v nowm_fw-la ius_fw-la a_o new_a right_n which_o new_a right_n if_o becane_n may_v be_v believe_v as_o a_o interpreter_n or_o concluder_n or_o judge_n be_v the_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n and_o so_o we_o have_v he_o cry_v guilty_a confess_v the_o question_n let_v we_o sound_v the_o victory_n for_o if_o there_o be_v no_o jar_n here_o betwixt_o the_o jesuit_n about_o this_o primacy_n then_o have_v we_o plain_o confirm_v and_o evict_v they_o that_o christian_a prince_n have_v a_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n for_o so_o bellarmine_n express_o and_o dogmatical_o affirm_v that_o ethnic_a king_n become_v christian_n acquire_v a_o new_a right_n which_o new_a right_n by_o confession_n of_o becane_n be_v the_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n therefore_o christian_a king_n have_v a_o primacy_n in_o the_o church_n but_o what_o be_v the_o primacy_n of_o pagan_a king_n as_o pagan_n i_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o papist_n themselves_o to_o consider_v becan_n exam._n 212_o pag._n 212_o i_o do_v not_o take_v away_o the_o supposition_n out_o of_o my_o own_o opinion_n
amplexi_fw-la idem_fw-la sibi_fw-la aut_fw-la non_fw-la multo_fw-la secus_fw-la asseruerunt_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o oath_n of_o primacy_n be_v first_o bring_v in_o under_o k._n henry_n the_o 8._o under_o who_o sir_n thomas_n more_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n be_v behead_v and_o that_o partly_o because_o they_o refuse_v that_o oath_n from_o he_o all_o my_o predecessor_n dough_n neward_o as_o many_o as_o have_v embrace_v this_o religion_n do_v retain_v the_o same_o oath_n or_o not_o much_o different_a unto_o themselnes_n etc._n etc._n now_o the_o late_a oath_n be_v invent_v by_o king_n james_n himself_o the_o second_o point_n 6._o the_o question_n than_o be_v whether_o all_o the_o king_n subject_n in_o england_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o tabe_fw-la both_o these_o oath_n as_o often_o as_o the_o king_n shall_v exact_v the_o same_o or_o whether_o they_o shall_v suff●rimprisonments_n torment_n and_o death_n itself_o rather_o than_o swear_v concern_v the_o former_a point_n the_o catholic_n doubt_v nothing_o for_o that_o they_o have_v certain_o and_o firm_o determine_v rather_o to_o less_o their_o line_n together_o with_o the_o glorious_a martyr_n sir_n thomas_n more_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n then_o to_o admit_v the_o king_n primacy_n and_o abjure_v the_o pope_n now_o concern_v the_o late_a oath_n there_o have_v be_v some_o doubt_n make_v these_o year_n past_a for_o that_o some_o catholic_n who_o perceive_v not_o the_o force_n &_o scope_n of_o that_o oath_n do_v a_o little_a stagger_v at_o the_o beginning_n whether_o they_o may_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n s●ear●_n thereto_o or_o no._n which_o doubt_n of_o they_o notwithstanding_o do_v not_o last_v long_o but_o be_v soon_o take_v away_o by_o pope_n paul_n the_o fist_n and_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n for_o the_o pope_n forthwith_o direct_v two_o apostolical_a breve_n to_o the_o catholic_n of_o england_n and_o the_o say_a card_n write_v a_o letter_n to_o ma._n blackwell_n then_o archpriest_n of_o this_o affair_n both_o pope_n and_o cardinal_n dec_fw-la deny_v that_o the_o say_a oath_n may_v be_v take_v with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n and_o their_o reason_n be_v this_o because_o no_o man_n with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n can_v deny_v the_o catholic_a faith_n but_o he_o now_o who_o shall_v take_v this_o oath_n propose_v by_o the_o king_n shall_v deny_v the_o catholic_a faith_n though_o not_o general_o yet_o in_o part_n so_o far_o forth_o as_o belong_v to_o some_o one_o article_n there_o of_o ergo_fw-la no_o man_n with_o a_o safe_a conscience_n can_v take_v this_o oath_n 7._o this_o reason_n be_v very_o sound_a all_o good_a catholic_n admit_v but_o our_o adversary_n do_v not_o ay_o in_o favour_n and_o consolation_n of_o the_o catholic_n have_v determine_v to_o adjoine_v here_o unto_o two_o other_o reason_n especial_o against_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n which_o by_o the_o adversary_n can_v be_v reject_v the_o first_o be_v this_o no_o man_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o swear_v that_o which_o be_v either_o apparent_o false_a or_o at_o leastwise_o doubt_v full_a but_o that_o the_o king_n be_v primate_n &_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o for_o such_o to_o be_v obey_v not_o only_o in_o temporal_a but_o also_o in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n be_v either_o apparent_o false_a or_o at_o leastwise_o doubt_v full_a ergo_fw-la no_o man_n be_v bind_v in_o conscience_n to_o swear_v the_o same_o the_o mayor_n be_v cuident_a of_o itself_o for_o that_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o affirm_v any_o thing_n which_o be_v either_o false_a ere_fw-we doubtful_a and_o much_o less_o to_o swear_v the_o same_o the_o minor_a be_v proon_v thus_o for_o that_o it_o be_v judge_v apparent_o false_a aswell_o among_o the_o caluinist_n as_o among_o the_o catholic_n that_o the_o king_n be_v primate_n &_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n but_o now_o among_o the_o caluinist_n of_o england_n who_o adhere_v unto_o the_o king_n the_o same_o be_v call_v into_o doubt_n for_o that_o some_o of_o they_o affirm_v other_o deny_v these_o point_n follow_v 1._o that_o the_o king_n be_v primate_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o that_o he_o be_v supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o that_o he_o have_v ecclesiastical_a primasy_n oner_o the_o church_n 4._o that_o he_o have_v power_n and_o jurisdiction_n ecclesiastical_a 5._o that_o the_o king_n by_o his_o own_o proper_a autheritie_n may_v assemble_v councelis_n or_o synod_n and_o sit_v as_o chief_a head_n or_o precedent_n therein_o 6._o that_o he_o can_v confer_v benefice_n or_o ecclesiastical_a live_n 7._o that_o he_o can_v create_v and_o depose_v bishop_n 8._o that_o he_o be_v ludge_n in_o controucrsy_n of_o faith_n etc._n etc._n so_o as_o true_o if_o these_o and_o the_o like_a point_n be_v doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a among_o those_o who_o adhere_v unto_o and_o fanour_n the_o king_n see_v that_o some_o deny_v they_o some_o assirme_v they_o it_o follow_v necessary_o that_o the_o king_n whole_a primacy_n be_v a_o uncertain_a thing_n what_o rashness_n then_o &_o impudency_n be_v it_o to_o go_v about_o to_o bind_v catholic_n in_o their_o conscience_n to_o swear_v that_o which_o they_o themselves_o do_v affirm_v some_o of_o they_o to_o be_v false_a some_o other_o to_o be_v doubt_n full_a 8._o i_o will_v explicate_v more_o distinct_o that_o which_o i_o have_v say_v the_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n primacy_n do_v contain_v so_o many_o part_n as_o there_o be_v or_o be_v think_v to_o be_v office_n and_o function_n of_o the_o king_n primacy_n the_o office_n then_o either_o be_v or_o be_v think_v to_o be_v dinerse_n as_o we_o have_v see_v before_o towit_n to_o assemble_v synod_n to_o exact_v and_o decree_v ecclesiastical_a law_n to_o confer_v benefice_n to_o create_v bishop_n to_o determine_v controver_n sie_fw-la of_o faith_n and_o the_o like_a therefore_o diverse_a be_v the_o part_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n of_o these_o part_n then_o let_v we_o take_v one_o of_o they_o by_o itself_o to_o wit_n this_o ay_o a._n b._n do_v swear_v in_o my_o conscience_n that_o i_o will_v be_v faithful_a &_o obedientunto_o the_o king_n as_o often_o or_o whensoever_o he_o shall_v by_o his_o own_o proper_a authority_n create_v bishop_n who_o he_o will_n &_o again_o depose_v from_o these_o office_n or_o dignity_n who_o he_o will_n etc._n etc._n if_o this_o part_n only_o of_o the_o king_n office_n shoul●_n be_v exact_v of_o all_o his_o majesty_n subject_n in_o england_n what_o do_v you_o think_v will_v be_v do_v will_v all_o trow_v you_o yea_o they_o who_o most_o adhere_v now_o unto_o the_o king_n swear_v this_o let_v they_o swear_v that_o will_v m._n tooker_n i_o be_o sure_a if_o he_o be_v a_o constant_a man_n will_v not_o for_o that_o he_o deny_v the_o creation_n and_o deposition_n of_o bishop_n to_o belong_v any_o way_n unto_o the_o king_n and_o if_o so_o be_v that_o he●_n who_o otherwise_o acknowledge_v the_o king_n primacy_n at_o least_o in_o word_n will_v not_o swear_v there_o unto_o how_o then_o shall_v catholic_n be_v compel_v to_o do_v the_o same_o who_o do_v in_o no_o wise_n acknow_v ledge_n it_o and_o what_o i_o have_v say_v concern_v this_o point_n the_o same_o may_v be_v also_o say_v of_o there_a 9_o my_o other_o reason_n be_v this_o king_n james_n do_v often_o protest_v that_o he_o claim_v no_o more_o right_a or_o inrisdiction_n oner_o the_o church_n than_o do_v the_o king_n in_o the_o olà_fw-fr tistament_n in_o ancient_a time_n and_o therefore_o that_o this_o his_o primacy_n must_v be_v coutain_v within_o the_o same_o limit_n &_o term_n that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o the_o king_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n can_v not_o compel_v their_o subject_n to_o swear_v such_o a_o oath_n as_o this_o ay_o a._n b._n do_v open_o testify_v and_o in_o my_o conscience_n declare_v that_o jeroboam_fw-la be_v the_o only_a supreme_a gonernour_n of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n as_o well_o in_o spiritual_a as_o temporal_a matter_n and_o that_o no_o foreigner_n have_v any_o jurisdiction_n power_n superiority_n pre-eminence_n or_o authority_n in_o this_o kingdom_n etc._n etc._n ergo_fw-la neither_o king_n james_n can_v enforce_v his_o subject_n to_o take_v such_o a_o like_a oath_n the_o mayor_n be_v manifest_a out_o of_o his_o majesty_n own_o word_n in_o his_o apology_n the_o minor_a i_o thus_o explicate_v after_o the_o death_n of_o king_n solomon_n his_o kingdom_n god_n so_o dispose_n be_v divide_v into_o two_o part_n whereof_o one_o contain_v ten_o tribe_n the_o other_o two_o so_o as_o by_o this_o mean_n they_o become_v two_o distinct_a kingdom_n afterward_o and_o therein_o reign_v two_o distinct_a king_n one_o whereof_o have_v no_o dependence_n of_o the_o other_o in_o temporal_a gonernment_n one_o be_v call_v king_n of_o israel_n the_o other_o king_n of_o juda_n and_o both_o of_o they_o have_v
successor_n in_o their_o kingdom_n the_o first_o king_n that_o rule_v after_o the_o dinision_n of_o the_o kingdom_n make_v be_v jeroboam_fw-la king_n of_o israel_n &_o roboam_n king_n of_o juda_n in_o either_o kingdom_n be_v priest_n and_o levit_n but_o the_o high_a or_o chief_a priest_n can_v not_o resid-in_a both_o kingdom_n but_o only_o in_o one_o and_o that_o ordinary_o in_o juda_n yet_o not_o withstand_v he_o be_v head_n of_o all_o the_o pru_v and_o levite_n that_o remain_v in_o both_o kindom_n neither_o can_v jeroboam_fw-la lawful_o say_v unto_o his_o priest_n and_o levite_n you_o shall_v not_o obey_v the_o high_a priest_n that_o reside_v in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n but_o you_o shall_v obey_v i_o only_o for_o you_o be_v exempt_v from_o his_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n etc._n etc._n and_o though_o he_o shall_v have_v so_o say_v yet_o no_o doubt_n but_o he_o have_v offend_v if_o now_o king_n jeroboam_fw-la can_v not_o exempt_v the_o priest_n and_o levite_n of_o his_o owns_o kingdom_n from_o the_o jurisdiction_n and_o power_n of_o a_o sorraine_a high_a priest_n by_o what_o right_n then_o do_v now_o king_n james_n of_o england_n do_v the_o same_o especial_o see_v he_o anerroth_n that_o he_o claim_v no_o more_o right_a or_o inrisdiction_n unto_o himself_o oner_n the_o church_n than_o the_o king_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n do_v the_o conclusion_n 1._o all_z then_o that_o have_v be_v hither_o to_o say_v may_v be_v reduce_v into_o three_o head_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o king_n primacy_n in_o the_o church_n be_v a_o new_a thing_n and_o first_o bring_v in_o by_o king_n henty_n the_o eight_o nor_o hitherto_o have_v be_v beard_n of_o or_o usurp_v in_o any_o other_o place_n then_o only_o in_o the_o kingdom_n of_o england_n the_o second_o be_v that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o jar_n and_o disagrement_n of_o the_o english_a ministry_n among_o themselves_o concern_v this_o primacy_n that_o it_o be_v not_o manifest_v nor_o certain_a what_o the_o say_a primacy_n be_v nor_o what_o source_n and_o authority_n the_o same_o have_v the_o three_o that_o the_o oath_n of_o this_o primacy_n can_v neither_o be_v exact_v by_o the_o king_n nor_o may_v the_o subtect_v take_v the_o same_o 2._o heerehence_a three_o other_o question_n which_o may_v be_v make_v concern_v the_o subject_n will_v easy_o be_v solue_v there_o be_v 3._o sort_n of_o subject_n in_o england_n the_o first_o as_o some_o call_v they_o be_v henrician_n who_o both_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v unto_o this_o kingly_a supremacy_n the_o second_o sort_n be_v puritan_n orpure_a calumist_n who_o indeed_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v the_o say_a supremacy_n but_o yet_o do_v swear_v thereunto_o the_o three_o be_v catholic_n which_o neither_o acknowledge_v it_o nor_o will_v swear_v it_o 3._o the_o first_o question_n than_o be_v what_o may_v be_v say_v of_o these_o henrician_n which_o both_o acknowledge_v and_o swear_v to_o the_o king_n supremacy_n i_o answer_v that_o they_o do_v unwise_o and_o inconsiderat_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o it_o be_v folly_n and_o rashness_n as_o before_o i_o have_v say_v to_o swear_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v doubt_v full_a &_o uncertain_a but_o the_o primacy_n of_o the_o king_n be_v a_o thing_n altogether_o doubtful_a and_o uncertain_a among_o the_o henrician_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o their_o jar_n and_o dissension_n which_o hither_o to_o we_o have_v shex_v ergo_fw-la to_o swear_v to_o such_o a_o supremacy_n be_v both_o folly_n and_o rashness_n 4._o the_o second_o question_n be_v what_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o puritan_n or_o pure_a caluinist_n who_o do_v not_o indeed_o acknowledge_v the_o king_n primacy_n and_o yet_o if_o they_o be_v command_v do_v swear_v thereto_o i_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v perjure_a person_n and_o politician_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o they_o belie●c_v one_o thing_n and_o swear_v another_o they_o beliene_n with_o caluin_n that_o neither_o king_n nor_o secular_a prince_n have_v any_o primacy_n in_o spiritual_a and_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n but_o only_o in_o temporal_a yet_o nevertheless_o they_o swear_v allegiance_n unto_o the_o king_n together_o with_o the_o foresay_a henrician_n as_o to_o the_o primate_n and_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n and_o this_o they_o do_v to_o make_v a_o external_a and_o political_a peace_n which_o be_v more_o esteem_v by_o they_o than_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o therefore_o they_o be_v rather_o to_o be_v call_v politic_n then_o christian_n of_o who_o his_o majesty_n give_v a_o most_o worthy_a testimony_n in_o his_o preface_n monitory_a to_o wit_n that_o he_o have_v find_v more_o truth_n and_o honesty_n in_o the_o high-land_n and_o border_a theene_n then_o in_o that_o sort_n of_o people_n 5._o the_o three_o question_n be_v what_o may_v be_v say_v of_o catholic_n who_o neither_o acknowledge_v the_o king_n primacy_n nor_o swcar_n thereto_o i_o answer_v that_o they_o be_v inst_z &_o upright_o man_n who_o walk_v before_o god_n in_o truth_n &_o verity_n they_o be_v sincere_a who_o profess_v with_o their_o month_n that_o which_o they_o think_v in_o their_o bart_n they_o be_v wise_a indeed_o who_o with_o good_a eleazarus_n have_v rather_o die_v than_o consent_n to_o any_o unlaw_n full_a thing_n no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o outward_a show_n they_o be_v like_a unto_o the_o apostle_n who_o endeavour_n to_o obey_v god_n rather_o than_o man_n they_o be_v like_a unto_o the_o martyr_n of_o the_o primitine_n church_n who_o free_o profess_v themselves_o before_o the_o persecutor_n to_o be_v such_o as_o indeed_o they_o be_v 6._o but_o you_o will_v say_v they_o be_v miserable_a for_o if_o they_o refuse_v the_o oath_n they_o be_v force_v to_o undergo_v impresonment_n torment_n punishment_n true_o they_o be_v not_o therefore_o miserable_a but_o most_o happy_a for_o so_o d●d_v our_o saviour_n teach_v we_o in_o the_o gospel_n math._n 5._o 10._o bless_a be_v they_o who_o suffer_v persecution_n for_o ●ustice_n for_o they_o be_v the_o kingdom_n of_o heanen_n but_o than_o you_o will_v say_v it_o be_v a_o hard_a thing_n to_o suffer_v how_o be_v that_o hard_a which_o be_v do_v with_o ●oy_n and_o delight_v hear_v what_o be_v say_v of_o the_o apostle_n act._n 5._o 41._o and_o they_o go_v from_o the_o sight_n of_o the_o council_n rejoice_v because_o they_o be_v account_v worthy_a to_o suffer_v reproach_n for_o the_o name_n of_o jesus_n hear_v what_o the_o apostle_n say_v of_o himself_o 2._o cor._n 4._o superabundo_fw-la gaudio_fw-la in_o om●i_fw-la tribulatione_fw-la nostra_fw-la i_o exceed_o rejoice_v in_o all_o our_o tribulation_n 7._o and_o from_o whence_o come_v this_o joy_n true_o from_o a_o twofold_a gift_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n to_o wit_n hope_n and_o charity_n hope_v of_o future_a glory_n that_o make_v we_o io●_a full_a and_o full_a of_o comfort_n in_o all_o adnersity_n rom._n 8._o 18._o the_o suffering_n of_o these_o time_n be_v not_o condign_a to_o the_o foture_n glory_n that_o shall_v be_v reneal_v in_o us._n and_o again_o rom._n 12._o 12._o rejoice_v in_o hope_n and_o patient_a in_o tribulation_n and_o heb._n 10._o 34._o the_o spoil_n of_o your_o own_o good_n you_o take_v with_o joy_n know_v that_o you_o have_v a_o better_a and_o a_o permanent_a substance_n do_v not_o there_o fore_o lose_v your_o confidence_n which_o have_v a_o great_a reward_n for_o patience_n be_v necessary_a for_o you_o that_o do_v the_o will_n of_o god_n you_o may_v receive_v the_o promise_n etc._n etc._n 8._o nor_o be_v the_o force_n of_o charity_n less_o rom._n 8._o 35._o who_o then_o shall_v separate_v we_o from_o the_o charity_n of_o christ_n tribulation_n or_o distress_n or_o famine_n or_o nakedness_n or_o danger_n or_o persecution_n or_o the_o sword_n etc._n etc._n but_o in_o all_o these_o thing_n we_o onercome_v because_o of_o he_o that_o have_v lo●ed_v us._n for_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o neither_o death_n nor_o life_n nor_o angel_n nor_o principality_n nor_o power_n neither_o thing_n present_a nor_o thing_n to_o come_v neither_o might_n nor_o height_n nor_o depth_n nor_o other_o creature_n shall_v be_v able_a to_o separate_v we_o from_o the_o charity_n of_o god_n which_o be_v in_o christ_n jesus_n our_o lord_n etc._n etc._n 9_o hereto_o belong_v the_o example_n of_o christ_n &_o of_o other_o saint_n which_o have_v great_a force_n and_o efficacy_n to_o stir_v up_o and_o streng_v then_o the_o heart_n of_o catholic_n to_o suffer_v patient_o in_o this_o life_n prison_n fetter_n torment_n yea_o death_n itself_o 1._o pet._n 2._o 20._o if_o do_v well_o you_o sustain_v patient_o this_o be_v thank_v before_o god_n for_o unto_o this_o be_v you_o call_v because_o christ_n also_o suffer_v for_o we_o lean_v you_o a_o example_n that_o you_o may_v follow_v his_o step_n who_o do_v not_o sin_n neither_o be_v guile_n find_v in_o his_o mouth_n who_o when_o he_o be_v re●●led_v do_v
not_o re●●le_a when_o he_o suffer_v he_o threaten_v not_o but_o deliver_v himself_o to_o he_o that_o judge_v he_o unjust_o etc._n etc._n 10._o and_o heb._n 11._o 36._o other_o have_v trial_n of_o reproach_n and_o stripe_n moreover_o also_o of_o band_n and_o prison_n they_o be_v stone_v they_o be_v hew_v they_o be_v tempt_v they_o die_v in_o the_o slaughter_n of_o the_o sword_n they_o go_v about_o in_o sheepskin_n in_o goate-skinne_n needy_a in_o distress_n afflict_v of_o who_o the_o world_n be_v not_o worthy_a wander_v to_o desert_n in_o mountain_n and_o den_n and_o in_o cave_n of_o the_o earth_n etc._n etc._n 11._o and_o again_o in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n and_o 1._o verse_n and_o therefore_o by_o patience_n let_v we_o run_v to_o the_o combat_n propose_v unto_o we_o look_v on_o the_o author_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o consummator_n jesus_n who_o joy_n be_v propose_v unto_o he_o sustain_v the_o cross_n contemn_v confusion_n and_o sit_v on_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o the_o seat_n of_o god_n for_o think_v diligent_o upon_o he_o who_o sustain_v of_o sinner_n such_o contradiction_n against_o himself_o that_o you_o be_v not_o weary_v faint_v in_o your_o mind_n for_o you_o have_v not_o y●trelisted_v unto_o blood_n etc._n etc._n 12._o and_o yet_o more_o a._n cor._n 11.23_o in_o very_o many_o labour_n in_o prison_n more_o abundant_o in_o stripe_n abone_n measure_n in_o death_n often_o of_o the_o jew_n five_o time_n do_v i_o receine_v forty_o stripe_n save_v one_o thrice_o be_v i_o beat_v with_o rodd_n once_o i_o be_v stone_v thrice_o i_o suffer_v shipwreck_n night_n and_o day_n have_v i_o be_v in_o the_o depth_n of_o the_o sea_n in_o ionrny_v often_o in_o peril_n of_o water_n peril_n of_o thief_n peril_n of_o my_o nation_n peril_n of_o gentile_n peril_n in_o the_o city_n peril_n in_o the_o wilderness_n peril_n in_o the_o sea_n peril_n among_o false_a brethren_n in_o labour_n and_o misery_n in_o much_o watch_n in_o hunger_n and_o thirst_n in_o fasting_n often_o in_o cold_a and_o nakedness_n etc._n etc._n 13._o and_o yet_o more_o in_o the_o 12._o chapter_n and_o 9_o verse_n glad_o will_v i_o glory_v in_o my_o own_o infirmity_n that_o the_o power_n of_o christ_n may_v dwell_v in_o i_o for_o which_o cause_n i_o please_v myself_o in_o infirmity_n in_o contumely_n in_o necessity_n in_o persecution_n in_o distress_n for_o christ_n for_o when_o i_o be_o weak_a then_o be_o i_o mighty_a etc._n etc._n 14._o with_o these_o and_o the_o like_a testimony_n of_o holy_a scripture_n be_v arm_v sir_n thomas_n more_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n when_o they_o rather_o choose_v to_o die_v then_o to_o take_v a_o impion_n &_o wicked_a oath_n with_o these_o place_n be_v other_o also_o animate_v who_o follow_v they_o in_o their_o glorious_a fight_n and_o last_o with_o these_o be_v they_o encourage_v who_o now_o in_o england_n be_v keep_v in_o prison_n bind_v in_o fetter_n spoil_v of_o their_o good_n and_o lining_n and_o purple_v in_o their_o own_o blood_n s._n cyprian_n epist_n 9_o pretiosa_n mors_fw-la haec_fw-la est_fw-la quae_fw-la emit_fw-la immortalitatem_fw-la pretio_fw-la sanguinis_fw-la svi_fw-la pretion_n be_v that_o death_n which_o buy_v immortality_n with_o the_o price_n of_o it_o blood_n and_o in_o the_o end_n of_o the_o same_o epistle_n o_o beatam_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la nostram_fw-la quam_fw-la temporibus_fw-la nostris_fw-la gloriosus_fw-la martyrum_fw-la sanguis_fw-la illustrat_fw-la erat_fw-la antea_fw-la in_o operibus_fw-la fratrum_fw-la candida_fw-la nunc_fw-la facta_fw-la est_fw-la in_o martyrun_n cruore_fw-la purpurea_fw-la o_o happy_a be_v our_o church_n which_o the_o glorious_a blood_n of_o martyr_n do_v in_o these_o our_o day_n illustrate_v it_o be_v make_v white_a before_o in_o the_o work_n of_o our_o brethren_n but_o now_o be_v it_o make_v purple_a in_o the_o blood_n of_o martyr_n and_o yet_o more_o in_o epist_n 24._o quid_fw-la gloriosius_fw-la aut_fw-la felicius_fw-la ulli_fw-la hominum_fw-la poterit_fw-la ex_fw-la divina_fw-la dignatione_fw-la contingere_fw-la quàm_fw-la inter_fw-la ipsos_fw-la carnifice_n interritum_fw-la confiteri_fw-la dominum_fw-la deum_fw-la quàm_fw-la inter_fw-la saevientia_fw-la saecularis_fw-la potestatis_fw-la tormenta_fw-mi etiam_fw-la extorto_fw-la &_o excruciato_fw-la &_o excarnificato_fw-la corpore_fw-la christum_fw-la de●_n filium_fw-la ersi_fw-la recedente_fw-la sed_fw-la ●amen_fw-la libero_fw-la spiritu_fw-la confiteri_fw-la quàm_fw-la relicto_fw-la mundo_fw-la caelum_fw-la petisse_fw-la quàm_fw-la desertis_fw-la hominibus_fw-la inter_fw-la angelos_n stare_v quàm_fw-la collegam_fw-la passioniscum_fw-la christo_fw-la in_fw-la christi_fw-la nomine_fw-la factum_fw-la esse_fw-la what_o can_v happen_v unto_o any_o man_n through_o god_n diu●ne_a bountifulness_n more_o glorious_a or_o more_o prosperous_a then_o without_o all_o fear_n to_o confess_v our_o lord_n god_n then_o amid_o the_o cruel_a torment_n of_o secular_a power_n to_o confess_v christ_n the_o son_n of_o god_n with_o a_o free_a spirit_n though_o now_o depart_v from_o the_o body_n yea_o from_o the_o body_n torture_v torment_a and_o all_o to_o bemangle_v then_o by_o lean_v the_o world_n to_o go_v to_o heanen_n then_o by_o for_o sake_z the_o company_n of_o man_n to_o be_v conversant_a with_o angel_n and_o be_v make_v partaker_n of_o the_o passion_n of_o christ_n in_o christ_n his_o name_n english_a concord_n it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o both_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n and_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o king_n apology_n but_o this_o be_v a_o very_a false_a &_o plain_o a_o jesuitical_a lie_n that_o in_o both_o those_o oath_n viz._n the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n the_o subject_n be_v require_v public_o and_o open_o to_o profess_v and_o acknowledge_v that_o king_n james_n be_v the_o supreme_a governor_n and_o lord_n of_o all_o england_n not_o only_o in_o politic_a and_o temporal_a matter_n but_o in_o spiritual_a &_o ecclesiastical_a also_o and_o that_o neither_o the_o pope_n nor_o any_o other_o foreigner_n have_v any_o power_n or_o inrisdiction_n in_o or_o oner_o the_o church_n of_o england_n here_o i_o begin_v with_o the_o i●suit_n take_v he_o nap_v in_o a_o gross_a falsification_n of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n for_o there_o be_v no_o such_o thing_n contain_v therein_o which_o be_v also_o testify_v by_o his_o excellent_a majesty_n in_o his_o preface_n monitory_a pag._n 11._o ut_fw-la certioribus_fw-la iudicijs_fw-la per_fw-la ditam_fw-la horum_fw-la convitiatorun_v malitiam_fw-la deprehendere_fw-la pos_fw-la sit_fw-la be_v etc._n etc._n that_o with_o more_o certain_a and_o assure_a token_n you_o may_v espy_v the_o desperate_a malice_n of_o these_o railer_n as_o the_o pope_n paul_n 5_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n and_o becane_n who_o impudent_o affirm_v that_o this_o oath_n be_v devise_v to_o entrap_v and_o beguile_v the_o conscience_n of_o improvident_a papist_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n i_o will_v declare_v the_o whole_a passage_n of_o the_o matter_n in_o few_o word_n as_o soon_o as_o this_o for_o i_o of_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v concein_v the_o low_a house_n of_o parliament_n think_v good_a to_o insert_v that_o clause_n whereby_o all_o power_n shall_v be_v take_v from_o the_o pope_n to_o excommunicate_v the_o king_n but_o i_o present_o cause_v the_o same_o to_o be_v raze_v out_o to_o the_o end_n that_o it_o may_v appear_v that_o this_o oath_n have_v no_o other_o force_n or_o respect_n then_o that_o the_o pope_n excommunication_n shall_v be_v no_o just_a or_o lawful_a cause_n unto_o my_o subject_n by_o secret_a or_o open_a practice_n to_o attempt_v any_o thing_n against_o my_o person_n or_o my_o kingdom_n because_o i_o think_v that_o this_o sentence_n of_o excommunication_n of_o a_o spiritual_a censure_n be_v by_o unjust_a usurpation_n of_o pope_n make_v a_o secular_a pretence_n and_o so_o exorbitant_a beyond_o all_o bound_n with_o so_o great_a care_n and_o study_v i_o do_v avoid_v that_o nothing_o shall_v be_v contain_v in_o this_o oath_n but_o that_o profession_n sion_fw-la of_o civil_a allegiance_n and_o temp_n or_o all_o obedience_n which_o nature_n itself_o prescribe_v to_o all_o they_o which_o be_v bear_v under_o any_o kingdom_n add_v only_o a_o firm_a promise_n whereby_o i_o demand_v of_o my_o subject_n aid_n and_o assistance_n against_o the_o breach_n of_o due_a allegiance_n and_o fidelity_n wherefore_o i_o faw_fw-we it_o appertain_v to_o the_o cause_n that_o i_o shall_v make_v a_o apology_n for_o this_o oath_n wherein_o i_o have_v take_v upon_o i_o to_o prove_v that_o nothing_o be_v contain_v herein_o but_o that_o which_o concern_v mere_a civil_a and_o temporal_a obedience_n such_o as_o be_v due_a to_o all_o sovereign_a prince_n and_o again_o in_o the_o 53._o page_n of_o the_o apology_n juramentum_fw-la primatus_fw-la excogitatum_fw-la est_fw-la ad_fw-la discrimen_fw-la faciendum_fw-la etc._n etc._n the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n be_v devise_v to_o discern_v and_o put_v a_o difference_n betwixt_o the_o papist_n and_o those_o of_o our_o religion_n but_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v invent_v to_o distingutsh_n
betwixt_o the_o papist_n who_o hold_v obedience_n &_o fidelity_n to_o the_o king_n in_o thing_n civil_a from_o those_o that_o be_v indiutdual_o affect_v to_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n concern_v your_o glorious_a martyr_n as_o you_o style_v bishop_n fisher_n and_o sir_n thomas_n more_n you_o may_v have_v learn_v out_o of_o tortura_fw-la torti_n pag._n 360._o how_o the_o worthy_a bishop_n of_o ely_n stop_v tortus_fw-la he_o mouth_n say_v dixerat_fw-la apologiae_fw-la author_n etc._n etc._n the_o author_n of_o the_o apology_n say_v that_o it_o be_v not_o any_o spiritual_a primacy_n but_o a_o carnal_a matrimony_n that_o bring_v the_o suppose_a martyr_n doom_n to_o sir_n thomas_n more_o and_o the_o bishop_n of_o rochester_n and_o this_o he_o speak_v not_o amiss_o but_o than_o reply_v tortus_fw-la then_o it_o be_v a_o carnal_a matrimany_n that_o cause_v holy_a s._n john_n baptist_n to_o suffer_v martyrdom_n when_o he_o free_o reprove_v king_n herod_n marriage_n with_o this_o example_n tortus_fw-la wound_v himself_o for_o tell_v i_o o_o tortus_fw-la what_o be_v that_o marriage_n be_v it_o not_o with_o his_o brother_n wife_n be_v not_o this_o the_o word_n that_o cost_v the_o baptist_n his_o life_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o thou_o to_o have_v thy_o brother_n wife_n but_o what_o be_v the_o cause_n of_o the_o death_n of_o more_o and_o fisher_n be_v it_o not_o clean_o contrary_a it_o be_v lawful_a for_o thou_o to_o have_v thy_o brother_n wife_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a for_o thou_o to_o put_v she_o away_o so_o that_o if_o saint_n john_n christ_n forerunner_n die_v unjust_o they_o die_v most_o just_o and_o if_o he_o be_v a_o martyr_n as_o he_o be_v then_o be_v they_o some_o other_o thing_n which_o i_o will_v not_o tell_v you_o for_o he_o die_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v not_o keep_v his_o brother_n wife_n but_o these_o die_v that_o the_o king_n shall_v not_o put_v away_o his_o brother_n wife_n he_o tell_v king_n herod_n it_o be_v not_o lawful_a they_o tell_v king_n henry_n it_o be_v lawful_a and_o he_o must_v not_o do_v otherwise_o can_v tortus_fw-la any_o way_n mar_v their_o martyr_n doom_n more_o deep_o so_o far_o the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n and_o give_v i_o leave_v to_o add_v something_o more_o o_o glorious_a martyr_n who_o have_v rather_o consent_v together_o to_o die_v then_o to_o confess_v the_o royal_a supremacy_n of_o king_n establish_v in_o the_o scripture_n use_v and_o practise_v by_o all_o the_o most_o commend_a christian_a king_n and_o withal_o to_o establish_v the_o papal_a primacy_n which_o christ_n himself_o express_o forbid_v which_o the_o father_n of_o the_o council_n of_o ephesus_n call_v the_o smoke_n of_o worldly_a power_n and_o they_o of_o carthage_n with_o all_o care_n and_o diligence_n admonish_v the_o church_n to_o beware_v of_o as_o typhum_fw-la saeculi_fw-la the_o arrogancy_n of_o this_o present_a world_n concern_v that_o notorious_a fact_n of_o pope_n paul_n the_o five_o and_o bellarmine_n which_o here_o the_o jesuit_n remember_v full_a of_o inhumanity_n impiety_n and_o audaciousness_n that_o excellent_o learned_a man_n ma._n causabon_n in_o his_o epistle_n to_o front_n ducaeus_n have_v teach_v he_o pag._n 167._o thus_o de_fw-fr fidelitatis_fw-la iuramento_fw-la cvi_fw-la occasionem_fw-la praebuit_fw-la pulueraria_fw-la coniuratio_fw-la etc._n etc._n concern_v that_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n first_o occasion_v by_o the_o gunpowder_n treason_n i_o marvel_v why_o the_o english_a papist_n so_o much_o complain_v they_o have_v much_o more_o cause_n to_o complain_v of_o cardinal_n bellarmine_n &_o some_o few_o other_o who_o harden_v the_o hart_n of_o pope_n paul_n the_o five_o to_o yield_v unto_o they_o who_o at_o the_o first_o with_o stand_v they_o for_o i_o speak_v not_o rash_o but_o have_v good_a author_n for_o my_o assurance_n that_o all_o the_o catholic_n in_o england_n shall_v here_o perish_v rather_o than_o a_o matter_n so_o just_a and_o equal_a shall_v be_v permit_v for_o what_o can_v be_v more_o equal_a than_o that_o subject_n shall_v promise_v fidelity_n to_o their_o sovereign_n especial_o after_o a_o treason_n so_o barbarous_a and_o notable_a for_o cruelty_n the_o king_n in_o the_o commonwealth_n be_v the_o same_o that_o a_o householder_n be_v in_o his_o private_a house_n and_o do_v you_o think_v that_o such_o a_o man_n be_v well_o advise_v to_o keep_v in_o his_o family_n any_o servant_n of_o who_o fidelity_n he_o be_v not_o persuade_v or_o rather_o who_o disposution_n he_o great_o suspect_v i_o think_v no_o body_n that_o be_v not_o mad_a will_v grant_v such_o a_o thing_n wherefore_o either_o king_n james_n have_v less_o power_n in_o his_o kingdom_n than_o a_o householder_n in_o his_o house_n or_o else_o these_o complaint_n about_o the_o subject_n oath_n of_o allegiance_n be_v all_o unjust_a and_o frivolous_a for_o in_o good_a sooth_n i_o have_v meet_v with_o many_o papist_n both_o in_o france_n and_o england_n and_o i_o have_v also_o read_v the_o writing_n of_o many_o who_o deem_v this_o oath_n not_o only_o most_o just_a but_o also_o most_o holy_a wherefore_o many_o of_o your_o side_n &_o some_o of_o they_o priest_n yea_o the_o archpriest_n black_a well_o have_v take_v the_o same_o without_o all_o scruple_n of_o conscience_n not_o against_o their_o will_n and_o by_o their_o public_a writing_n learned_o and_o true_o though_o sharp_o against_o the_o pope_n and_o the_o jesuit_n have_v persuade_v other_o to_o do_v the_o like_a such_o be_v master_n sheldon_n and_o master_n warmington_n but_o yet_o there_o be_v some_o with_o who_o the_o pope_n bull_n and_o bellarmine_n letter_n prevail_v more_o than_o the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n &_o of_o all_o nation_n or_o the_o example_n of_o wise_a man_n and_o if_o the_o law_n run_v upon_o these_o what_o place_n be_v there_o leave_v for_o complaint_n and_o you_o yourselves_o which_o call_v this_o a_o persecution_n of_o catholic_n can_v tell_v for_o what_o cause_n and_o by_o what_o example_n of_o antiquity_n you_o so_o term_v it_o it_o be_v never_o do_v nor_o hear_v of_o that_o christian_a people_n say_v they_o suffer_v persecution_n if_o they_o be_v command_v to_o swear_v allegiance_n to_o their_o sovereign_n but_o we_o read_v the_o contrary_a in_o the_o counsel_n where_o they_o be_v accurse_v that_o break_n faith_n to_o their_o king_n which_o they_o have_v vox_v to_o they_o for_o the_o preservation_n of_o the_o slate_n of_o their_o country_n and_o of_o their_o king_n and_o you_o know_v the_o four_o council_n of_o toledo_n declare_v all_o such_o excommunicate_a from_o the_o church_n here_o be_v work_v for_o the_o jesuit_n let_v he_o satisfy_v these_o thing_n and_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n let_v he_o understand_v that_o that_o catholic_a faith_n be_v accurse_v with_o all_o malediction_n as_o inhuman_a impious_a sacrilegious_a antichristian_a &_o diabolical_a whereof_o this_o be_v one_o article_n that_o christian_a people_n ought_v not_o to_o swear_v allegiance_n to_o their_o lawful_a sovereign_n to_o weet_v that_o which_o as_o have_v be_v declare_v the_o law_n of_o god_n the_o law_n of_o nature_n and_o the_o canon_n of_o counsel_n have_v ordain_v as_o most_o equal_a and_o most_o holy_a orelse_a thus_o to_o speak_v after_o becans_n manner_n that_o for_o christian_a people_n to_o swear_v allegiance_n to_o their_o lawful_a prince_n be_v to_o deny_v the_o catholic_n faith_n and_o this_o reason_n be_v very_a sound_n all_o good_a catholic_n admit_v say_v becane_n but_o in_o truth_n this_o reason_n as_o very_o rot_v be_v only_o admit_v by_o antichristian_a catholic_n but_o we_o protestant_n the_o only_a true_a and_o proper_a orthodoxal_a or_o right_a believe_a catholic_n will_v never_o admit_v it_o and_o i_o say_v the_o jesuit_n will_v adjoine_v two_o other_o reason_n on_o the_o behalf_n of_o catholic_n against_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n which_o by_o the_o adversary_n can_v be_v reject_v he_o shall_v rather_o have_v say_v thus_o and_o i_o for_o the_o destruction_n of_o my_o friend_n the_o romish_a catholic_n will_v adjoine_v two_o other_o reason_n which_o may_v be_v most_o just_o refuse_v &_o explode_v by_o all_o our_o adversary_n the_o protestant_n but_o have_v martin_n the_o jesuit_n here_o forget_v himself_o be_v not_o the_o reason_n of_o pope_n paul_n and_o bellarmine_n late_o allege_v express_o bring_v against_o the_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n which_o only_o be_v in_o controversy_n and_o will_v he_o now_o dispute_v against_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n which_o be_v distinct_a and_o several_a from_o the_o oath_n in_o question_n martin_n therefore_o shall_v rather_o say_v thus_o i_o have_v determine_v for_o the_o ruin_n of_o catholic_n in_o england_n to_o adjoine_v two_o reason_n more_o nothing_o differ_v from_o the_o former_a well_o then_o let_v we_o hear_v these_o two_o pretty_a reason_n his_o first_o reason_n be_v this_o 1._o it_o be_v manifest_o false_a or_o at_o least_o
much_o as_o god_n can_v do_v and_o i_o will_v yet_o deal_v more_o articulate_o and_o plain_o 6._o plain_o joh._n de_fw-fr paris_n de_fw-fr pot._n reg._n &_o pap._n auentinus_n l._n 6._o he_o shall_v be_v lord_n in_o temporal_a thing_n through_o the_o whole_a world_n direct_o &_o indirect_o ros●l_n indirect_o de_fw-fr maior_n solitae_fw-la anto._n de_fw-fr ros●l_n the_o king_n of_o king_n and_o lord_n of_o lord_n licet_fw-la lord_n dist_n 98._o si_fw-mi imper._n in_o gloss_n extra_n de_fw-it fo●o_fw-it competent_a ca._n licet_fw-la be_v above_o all_o emperor_n as_o his_o vassal_n sanctam_fw-la vassal_n de_fw-fr maior_n unam_fw-la sanctam_fw-la have_v of_o his_o own_o both_o sword_n 1154._o sword_n auent_n in_o adriano_n 4._o anno_fw-la 1154._o be_v set_v over_o nation_n and_o kingdom_n to_o destroy_v to_o pluck_v up_o build_v and_o plant_v 8._o plant_v hard._n jew._n p._n 5._o c._n 6._o d._n 8._o from_o who_o alone_o all_o emperor_n hold_v their_o empire_n 4._o empire_n auent_n in_o adrian_n 4._o in_o who_o power_n it_o be_v to_o give_v they_o or_o take_v they_o from_o who_o he_o will_v 3._o will_v carion_n de_fw-fr alexand._n 3._o who_o tread_v the_o neck_n of_o king_n under_o his_o foot_n hovenden_n foot_n caelestinus_n papa_n vide_fw-la rogetum_fw-la cestr●nsem_fw-la et_fw-la hovenden_n and_o to_o conclude_v who_o crow_v king_n with_o his_o foot_n and_o with_o his_o foot_n again_o spurn_v the_o crown_n to_o the_o ground_n gl_v ground_n de_fw-fr maior_n solitae_fw-la gl_v be_v seventie_o time_n seven_o great_a than_o the_o great_a king_n i_o will_v yet_o express_v the_o matter_n more_o articulate_o 17._o articulate_o lyra_n in_o d●ut_o c._n 17._o he_o shall_v be_v so_o absolute_a a_o judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n that_o if_o he_o shall_v say_v the_o right_a hand_n be_v the_o left_a or_o the_o left_a hand_n the_o right_n his_o say_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v and_o this_o be_v the_o opinion_n of_o bellarmine_n 5._o bellarmine_n de_fw-fr pont._n po._n li._n 4._o c._n 5._o if_o the_o pope_n shall_v command_v vice_n and_o forbid_v virtue_n the_o church_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v that_o virtue_n be_v evil_a and_o vice_n be_v good_a and_o they_o give_v this_o reason_n thereof_o 1._o thereof_o panor_n de_fw-fr constit_fw-la c._n 1._o the_o fullness_n of_o the_o pope_n power_n excel_v all_o positive_a law_n ibidem_fw-la law_n de_fw-fr transl_fw-fr epis_fw-la quanto_fw-la glossa_fw-la hostiensis_n ibidem_fw-la and_o it_o suffice_v that_o the_o pope_n will_v go_v for_o a_o law_n whereby_o he_o can_v make_v righteousness_n of_o unrighteousness_n and_o hereupon_o philelphus_n decad._n 6._o hecast_n 9_o beautiful_o describe_v the_o pope_n as_o antichrist_n say_v non_fw-la scytha_n non_fw-la turcus_n non_fw-la quiterrore_fw-la damascum_fw-la aegyptumue_n tenet_n sed_fw-la maximus_fw-la ille_fw-la sacerdos_n e_z medio_fw-la templi_fw-la nostrum_fw-la emersurus_fw-la in_o axem_fw-la antichristus_fw-la erit_fw-la quise_z canit_fw-la ore_fw-la colendum_fw-la pro_fw-la christo_fw-la cvius_fw-la refer_v at_o nomenque_fw-la vicemque_fw-la which_o i_o english_a thus_o no_o tartar_n grim_a or_o turk_n or_o fear_v saladine_n shall_v be_v that_o antichrist_n but_o that_o high_a priest_n that_o amid_o the_o temple_n sit_v adore_v with_o dread_a dinine_a who_o bear_v the_o name_n &_o vicar_n be_v of_o christ._n i_o may_v be_v infinite_a in_o number_v the_o several_a office_n which_o be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o office_n of_o the_o roman_a primacy_n out_o of_o which_o i_o will_v frame_v this_o after_o becans_n manner_n i_o a._n b._n do_v public_o testify_v and_o swear_v in_o my_o conscience_n that_o i_o will_v be_v faithful_a and_o obedient_a to_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o often_o or_o whensoever_o he_o shall_v by_o his_o own_o proper_a authority_n direct_o in_o temporal_a cause_n create_v emperor_n who_o he_o will_v or_o by_o the_o same_o power_n depose_v who_o he_o will_v if_o this_o part_n only_o of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n shall_v be_v exact_v of_o all_o the_o jesuit_n what_o do_v you_o think_v will_v be_v do_v will_v all_o think_v you_o yea_o they_o which_o adhere_v unto_o the_o pope_n swear_v this_o let_v they_o swear_v that_o will_v as_o baronius_n triumphus_fw-la carerius_fw-la and_o almost_o all_o the_o canonist_n and_o many_o other_o famous_a popish_a writer_n yet_o i_o amsure_v that_o bellarmine_n and_o becane_n if_o they_o be_v constant_a man_n will_v never_o swear_v for_o thus_o write_v bellarmine_n papa_n not_o habet_fw-la ullam_fw-la merè_fw-la temporalem_fw-la iurisdictionem_fw-la directè_fw-la jure_fw-la divino_fw-la lib._n de_fw-fr pont._n rom._n 5._o cap._n 4._o the_o pope_n have_v no_o mere_a temporal_a jurisdiction_n direct_o by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o becane_n in_o his_o refuration_n pag._n 18._o acprimum_fw-la non_fw-la disceptamus_fw-la de_fw-fr primatu_fw-la in_o temporalibus_fw-la illum_fw-la cuique_fw-la rex_fw-la insuo_fw-la regno_fw-la legitimè_fw-la habeat_fw-la we_o dispute_v not_o of_o the_o primacy_n in_o temporal_a cause_n let_v every_o king_n in_o his_o kingdom_n lawful_o possess_v the_o same_o what_o then_o be_v this_o so_o sure_a a_o ground_n with_o bellarmine_n and_o becane_n that_o they_o firm_o determine_v to_o lose_v their_o life_n like_o many_o glorious_a martyr_n in_o this_o kingdom_n rather_o than_o to_o admit_v the_o pope_n supremacy_n &_o abjure_v the_o king_n for_o this_o be_v think_v to_o be_v one_o of_o the_o prime_a office_n of_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n that_o the_o pope_n be_v lord_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n direct_o in_o all_o temporal_a cause_n but_o this_o be_v utter_o false_a in_o the_o conscience_n of_o becane_n and_o bellarmine_n or_o whether_o partly_o for_o preservation_n of_o external_a peace_n and_o government_n which_o these_o menesteeme_v more_o than_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n or_o partly_o that_o one_o of_o they_o may_v be_v make_v pope_n the_o other_o a_o cardinal_n which_o good_a fortune_n may_v befall_v they_o hereafter_o will_v they_o swear_v against_o their_o own_o conscience_n unto_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n with_o all_o function_n which_o be_v think_v to_o be_v part_n thereof_o and_o thereof_o shall_v be_v brand_v as_o carerius_fw-la have_v mark_v they_o to_o be_v impious_a politician_n of_o our_o time_n deserve_v rather_o the_o name_n of_o haretick_n then_o of_o catholic_n of_o who_o may_v pope_n paul_n the_o fist_n true_o affirm_v that_o he_o have_v find_v more_o truth_n in_o savage_a &_o wilderobber_n then_o in_o these_o kind_n of_o man_n viz._n the_o jesuit_n which_o teach_v &_o practise_v the_o art_n of_o equivocation_n even_o in_o their_o solemn_a swear_n and_o thus_o much_o for_o the_o first_o reason_n which_o i_o be_o sure_a be_v enough_o if_o not_o too_o much_o for_o bellarmine_n and_o becane_n also_o his_o second_o reason_n be_v this_o king_n james_n do_v often_o protest_v that_o he_o claim_v no_o more_o right_a or_o jurisdiction_n over_o the_o church_n than_o do_v the_o king_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n long_o ago_o but_o the_o king_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n can_v not_o compel_v their_o subject_n to_o swear_v such_o a_o oath_n as_o this_o be_v ay_o a._n b._n do_v open_o testify_v and_o in_o my_o conscience_n declare_v that_o jeroboam_fw-la be_v the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o this_o kingdom_n of_o israel_n as_o well_o in_o spiritual_a as_o temporal_a matter_n and_o that_o no_o foreigner_n have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v any_o jurisdiction_n power_n superiority_n or_o authority_n in_o this_o kingdom_n ergo_fw-la king_n james_n etc._n etc._n and_o a_o little_a after_o he_o explicate_v his_o minor_a proposition_n thus_o after_o king_n solomon_n there_o be_v two_o distinct_a kingdom_n juda_n and_o israel_n and_o there_o be_v two_o king_n whereof_o both_o have_v their_o successor_n there_o be_v priest_n and_o levite_n in_o both_o who_o be_v chief_o rule_v by_o the_o high_a priest_n who_o live_v in_o jerusalem_n and_o yet_o jeroboam_fw-la can_v not_o lawful_o say_v to_o his_o priest_n and_o levite_n you_o shall_v not_o obey_v that_o high_a priest_n resident_a in_o juda_n you_o be_v exempt_a from_o his_o jurisdiction_n etc._n etc._n so_o becane_n i_o answer_v can_v any_o man_n endure_v either_o in_o a_o divine_a so_o great_a ignorance_n or_o such_o malice_n in_o a_o jesuit_n as_o though_o the_o king_n majesty_n do_v ever_o believe_v write_v or_o so_o much_o as_o dream_v either_o that_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o the_o wicked_a king_n of_o israel_n of_o who_o jeroboam_fw-la be_v ringleader_n do_v practice_n impious_o in_o ecclesiastical_a matter_n or_o that_o all_o that_o jurisdiction_n which_o those_o ungodly_a king_n do_v challenge_v over_o the_o church_n do_v belong_v to_o the_o king_n supremacy_n of_o jeroboam_fw-la thus_o speak_v holy_a write_v 1._o king_n 12.28_o the_o king_n make_v two_o golden_a calf_n and_o say_v unto_o the_o israelite_n it_o be_v too_o much_o for_o you_o to_o go_v up_o to_o jerusalem_n behold_v the_o god_n that_o bring_v you_o up_o out_o of_o the_o land_n of_o
egypt_n and_o he_o put_v one_o of_o they_o in_o bethel_n and_o the_o other_o in_o dan._n also_o he_o make_v a_o house_n of_o the_o high_a place_n and_o make_v bim_n priest_n of_o the_o low_a of_o the_o people_n who_o be_v not_o of_o the_o son_n of_o levi._n and_o jeroboam_fw-la make_v a_o feast_n in_o the_o fifteen_o day_n of_o the_o eight_o month_n like_v unto_o the_o feast_n that_o be_v in_o judah_n and_o sacrifice_v on_o the_o altar_n so_o do_v he_o in_o bethel_n and_o offer_v unto_o the_o calf_n that_o he_o have_v make_v and_o he_o constitute_v in_o bethel_n the_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a place_n which_o he_o have_v make_v and_o you_o may_v read_v in_o the_o 13._o chapter_n that_o be_v rebuke_v by_o a_o prophet_n for_o this_o matter_n yet_o he_o depart_v not_o from_o his_o evil_a way_n but_o turn_v himself_o and_o make_v he_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a place_n the_o saece_n populi_fw-la of_o the_o dregs_n of_o the_o people_n and_o whosoever_o please_v he_o he_o consecrate_v he_o and_o make_v he_o a_o priest_n of_o the_o high_a place_n and_o again_o 2._o chron._n ii_o chap._n 13._o verse_n and_o the_o priest_n and_o the_o levite_n that_o be_v in_o all_o israel_n resort_v to_o he_o out_o of_o all_o their_o coast_n meaning_n roboam_n the_o son_n of_o solomon_n for_o the_o levite_n leave_v their_o suburb_n &_o their_o possession_n and_o come_v to_o judah_n and_o to_o jerusalem_n for_o jeroboam_fw-la and_o his_o son_n have_v cast_v they_o out_o from_o minister_a in_o the_o priest_n office_n before_o the_o lord_n but_o thus_o write_v the_o king_n and_o his_o learned_a interpreter_n the_o bishop_n of_o ely_n in_o tort._n tort._n pag._n 381._o quodcunque_fw-la in_o rebus_fw-la religionis_fw-la reges_fw-la israel_n fecerunt_fw-la nec_fw-la sine_fw-la laud_fw-la fecerunt_fw-la id_fw-la ut_fw-la et_fw-la regi_fw-la jacobo_n faciendi_fw-la ius_fw-la sit_fw-la atque_fw-la potestas_fw-la whatsoever_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n do_v with_o commendation_n in_o the_o matter_n of_o religion_n the_o same_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n now_o have_v king_n james._n let_v this_o therefore_o be_v the_o proposition_n or_o first_o part_n of_o the_o second_o reason_n which_o becane_n himself_o acknowledge_v in_o his_o refuration_n cap._n 8._o pag._n 124_o and_o then_o i_o will_v assume_v the_o minor_n but_o the_o king_n of_o israel_n not_o without_o commendation_n by_o their_o royal_a authority_n in_o matter_n of_o religion_n 1._o have_v enact_v law_n 2._o delegated_a of_o their_o subject_n to_o judge_v of_o such_o law_n 3._o have_v bind_v all_o their_o subject_n both_o clergy_n man_n and_o layman_n by_o oath_n of_o allegiance_n 4._o have_v pumsh_v the_o transgressor_n of_o such_o law_n 5._o have_v call_v assembly_n or_o counsel_n 6._o have_v rule_v all_o estate_n as_o the_o head_n of_o the_o tribe_n of_o levi_n as_o well_o as_o of_o the_o other_o tribe_n and_o be_v as_o much_o king_n of_o the_o clergy_n as_o of_o the_o laity_n 7._o if_o any_o abiathar_n or_o high_a priest_n wax_v proud_a they_o bridle_v he_o by_o their_o censure_n and_o if_o there_o be_v cause_n depose_v abiathar_n from_o the_o high_a priesthood_n 8._o they_o abolish_v all_o strange_a worship_n as_o when_o they_o raze_v the_o high_a place_n break_v in_o piece_n the_o golden_a calf_n and_o the_o brazen_a serpent_n etc._n etc._n to_o conclude_v they_o give_v order_n for_o thing_n indifferent_a which_o appertain_v to_o the_o outward_a splendour_n &_o comeliness_n of_o the_o house_n of_o g_o o_o d_o and_o by_o their_o authority_n cut_v off_o idle_a and_o curious_a question_n in_o religion_n which_o be_v wont_a to_o be_v the_o mother_n and_o breeder_n of_o schism_n as_o the_o scripture_n express_o witness_v whereof_o you_o may_v read_v in_o tort._n torti_n pag._n 381.382_o therefore_o i_o will_v conclude_v that_o king_n james_n have_v the_o same_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n and_o therefore_o may_v bind_v his_o subject_n by_o a_o oath_n ay_o a._n b._n do_v open_o testify_v and_o declare_v in_o my_o conscience_n that_o king_n james_n be_v the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o this_o realm_n and_o of_o this_o church_n of_o england_n etc._n etc._n as_o be_v david_n and_o solomon_n of_o the_o church_n of_o israel_n and_o asa_n ezekias_n and_o josias_n of_o the_o church_n of_o juda_n and_o that_o no_o foreigner_n have_v or_o aught_o to_o have_v any_o jurisdiction_n power_n etc._n etc._n within_o this_o kingdom_n as_o they_o have_v none_o in_o juda_n and_o so_o may_v lawful_o say_v to_o the_o priest_n subject_n obey_v not_o the_o high_a priest_n which_o dwell_v in_o any_o foreign_a kingdom_n but_o obey_v i_o alone_o as_o the_o only_a supreme_a governor_n of_o this_o church_n you_o be_v all_o exempt_a from_o his_o power_n and_o jurisdiction_n for_o so_o david_n solomon_n asa_n ezekias_n and_o josias_n may_v lawful_o command_v their_o priest_n &_o levit_n and_o therefore_o so_o may_v king_n james_n command_v his_o clergy_n these_o thing_n thou_o may_v perceive_v learned_a reader_n be_v collect_v out_o of_o the_o pure_a fountain_n of_o sacred_a scripture_n and_o so_o conclude_v our_o cause_n solid_o and_o beyond_o all_o exception_n but_o becane_n his_o sillogisme_n be_v a_o monster_n in_o logic_n run_v upon_o some_o foot_n &_o yet_o halt_v for_o king_n james_n speak_v of_o godly_a &_o religious_a king_n and_o not_o schismatical_a either_o of_o all_o israel_n or_o only_o of_o juda_n and_o of_o their_o ecclesiastical_a government_n the_o very_a pattern_n and_o exemplary_a primacy_n commend_v unto_o christian_a king_n in_o the_o scripture_n but_o martin_n the_o sophister_n that_o be_v the_o jesuit_n assume_v impious_a &_o schismatical_a king_n of_o israel_n rend_v from_o juda_n among_o who_o never_o any_o one_o be_v remember_v in_o scripture_n to_o have_v handle_v ecclesiastical_a matter_n with_o commendation_n and_o here_o i_o entreat_v the_o ingenuous_a reader_n to_o observe_v the_o jesuitical_a and_o serpentine_a subtlety_n of_o becane_n who_o to_o deccive_v his_o catholic_n pass_v by_o all_o the_o godly_a king_n of_o juda_n and_o only_o bring_v jeroboam_fw-la on_o the_o stage_n a_o schismatical_a king_n the_o first_o head_n of_o that_o iniquitic_a and_o the_o ringleader_n of_o all_o they_o that_o be_v brand_v with_o note_n of_o infamy_n in_o the_o holy_a book_n as_o 1._o king_n 15.29_o and_o baasa_n strike_v all_o the_o house_n of_o icroboam_n he_o leave_v no_o soul_n alive_a because_o of_o the_o sin_n wherewith_o icroboam_n sin_v and_o make_v israel_n to_o sin_n and_o 2._o chron._n 13.5_o ought_v you_o not_o to_o know_v that_o the_o lord_n god_n of_o israel_n have_v give_v the_o kingdom_n over_o israel_n to_o david_n for_o ever_o even_o to_o he_o and_o to_o his_o son_n by_o a_o covenant_n of_o salt_n and_o icroboam_n the_o son_n of_o nebat_fw-la the_o servant_n of_o solomon_n the_o son_n of_o david_n be_v rise_v up_o and_o bath_n rebel_v against_o his_o lord_n etc._n etc._n loe_o this_o be_v that_o most_o impious_a rebellious_a and_o schismatical_a jeroboam_fw-la which_o must_v comfort_v and_o confirm_v the_o romish_a catholic_n but_o see_v our_o jesuit_n be_v conversant_a among_o schism_n and_o schismatics_n let_v he_o assume_v and_o make_v his_o instance_n those_o three_o antipope_n who_o trouble_v the_o world_n about_o the_o time_n of_o the_o council_n of_o constance_n or_o let_v he_o take_v any_o one_o of_o they_o and_o tell_v i_o 1._o who_o be_v then_o the_o primate_n of_o the_o church_n 2._o who_o be_v then_o the_o supreme_a head_n of_o the_o church_n 3._o who_o have_v then_o the_o ecclesiastical_a primacy_n 4._o who_o do_v then_o exercise_v the_o supreme_a ecclesiastical_a jurisdiction_n 5._o who_o can_v then_o by_o his_o own_o authority_n call_v a_o general_a council_n and_o sit_v therein_o precedent_n 6._o who_o have_v power_n to_o conserre_v that_o fat_a benefice_n of_o the_o papacy_n itself_o 7._o who_o can_v then_o create_v pope_n and_o depose_v the_o antipope_n 8._o who_o be_v then_o the_o supreme_a judge_n of_o all_o controversy_n especial_o of_o papal_a or_o popish_a question_n but_o i_o will_v yet_o press_v the_o jesuit_n more_o necre_o what_o if_o the_o french_a so_o call_v catholic_n church_n shall_v create_v to_o itself_o a_o patriarch_n &_o leave_v the_o see_v of_o rome_n see_v the_o pope_n paul_n the_o fist_n claim_v temporal_a jurisdiction_n over_o the_o king_n of_o france_n what_o if_o other_o king_n both_o protestant_n &_o all_o those_o which_o call_v themselves_o catholic_n see_v the_o pope_n claim_v jurisdiction_n over_o all_o in_o a_o common_a cause_n that_o so_o much_o concern_v their_o crown_n and_o royal_a dignity_n shall_v join_v hand_n and_o heart_n and_o establish_v a_o patriarch_n in_o their_o several_a kingdom_n who_o shall_v 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d 〈◊〉_d take_v and_o exercise_v the_o same_o jurisdiction_n that_o the_o old_a roman_a patriarch_n have_v &_o do_v
practice_n in_o his_o province_n which_o thing_n make_v so_o much_o for_o establish_v and_o confirm_v the_o outward_a peace_n and_o ecclesiastical_a polity_n of_o the_o christian_a world_n be_v much_o desire_a inno_n cod._n de_fw-fr sacra_fw-la sa_fw-fr eccl._n l._n omni_fw-la inno_n and_o hope_v for_o at_o the_o next_o general_a council_n as_o we_o read_v in_o old_a time_n that_o the_o emperor_n of_o constantinople_n by_o his_o law_n do_v in_o all_o thing_n equal_v the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o constantinople_n with_o the_o power_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n quam_fw-la legem_fw-la evertere_fw-la nunquam_fw-la potuit_fw-la papa_n omne_fw-la conatus_fw-la imperator_fw-la be_v patrocinio_fw-la tutam_fw-la which_o law_n maintain_v by_o the_o patronage_n of_o the_o emperor_n the_o pope_n can_v never_o repeal_v although_o he_o assay_v all_o mean_n for_o the_o same_o liberat._n cap._n 13._o and_o may_v not_o then_o i_o pray_v you_o sir_n those_o king_n lawful_o say_v to_o their_o priest_n do_v not_o obey_v the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n but_o obey_v this_o patriarch_n alone_o you_o be_v exempt_a from_o all_o romish_a power_n and_o jurisdiction_n if_o the_o jesuit_n doubt_v hereof_o let_v he_o repair_v to_o gerson_n de_n auferebilitate_fw-la papae_fw-la that_o stiff_a patron_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o he_o will_v teach_v he_o thus_o much_o johannes_n de_fw-fr parisys_n also_o in_o his_o treatise_n de_fw-fr pot._n reg._n &_o papal_n cap._n 13._o write_v thus_o bonifacius_n obtinuit_fw-la a_o phoca_n etc._n etc._n pope_n boniface_n obtain_v of_o phocas_n that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n shall_v be_v call_v the_o head_n of_o all_o church_n whereby_o we_o may_v gather_v such_o another_o argument_n that_o it_o appertain_v to_o the_o emperor_n to_o transfer_v the_o primacy_n of_o the_o church_n and_o to_o order_n ecclesiasticad_n affair_n according_a also_o with_o the_o decrce_n of_o the_o council_n of_o chalcedon_n cap._n 28_o or_o as_o it_o be_v relate_v by_o carranza_n sess_n 16._o sedi_fw-la veter_fw-la be_v romae_fw-la patres_fw-la merito_fw-la dederunt_fw-la primatum_fw-la quódilla_fw-la civitas_fw-la caeter_fw-la be_v imperaret_fw-la and_o cap._n 12._o quascunque_fw-la civitates_fw-la per_fw-la literas_fw-la regis_fw-la metropolitico_fw-la honour_n arunt_fw-la nomine_fw-la the_o old_a father_n do_v worthy_o give_v the_o primacy_n to_o the_o see_v of_o old_a rome_n because_o it_o then_o rule_v over_o all_o the_o residue_n and_o all_o city_n be_v honour_v with_o the_o title_n of_o metropolitan_a by_o the_o king_n letter_n patent_n but_o now_o at_o length_n i_o will_v particular_o answer_v to_o the_o objection_n of_o becane_n 1._o there_o be_v not_o priest_n and_o levite_n in_o both_o the_o kingdom_n of_o juda_n and_o israel_n as_o have_v appear_v out_o of_o the_o express_a word_n of_o the_o scripture_n 2._o jeroboam_fw-la might_n lawful_o say_v unto_o his_o priest_n which_o be_v not_o levites_n but_o of_o the_o low_a of_o the_o people_n and_o by_o he_o make_v and_o consecrate_v you_o be_v exempt_a from_o the_o jurisdiction_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n which_o be_v at_o jerusalem_n 3._o if_o king_n james_n so_o often_o protest_v that_o his_o primacy_n be_v define_v within_o those_o bound_n and_o limit_n wherein_o the_o godly_a king_n u●der_v the_o old_a testament_n contain_v they_o then_o it_o follow_v that_o the_o primacy_n of_o king_n be_v both_o godly_a and_o certain_a found_v on_o holy_a scripture_n and_o not_o doubtful_a or_o false_a as_o this_o falsary_a martin_n affirm_v nor_o contain_v so_o many_o part_n as_o be_v think_v to_o be_v the_o office_n thereof_o by_o hainric_n thomson_n burhil_n dr._n tooker_n or_o any_o other_o protestant_n second_o that_o king_n james_n may_v lawful_o and_o by_o right_n compel_v his_o subject_n to_o the_o oath_n of_o supremacy_n three_o that_o pope_n paul_n the_o fist_n bellarmine_n and_o becane_n resist_v king_n james_n impious_o and_o against_o all_o humanity_n by_o seek_v to_o avert_v his_o subject_n from_o their_o allegiance_n &_o from_o take_v both_o the_o one_o and_o the_o other_o so_o just_a and_o godly_a a_o oath_n after_o the_o same_o manner_n as_o elymas_n do_v resist_v the_o apostle_n seek_v to_o turn_v away_o the_o proconsul_n from_o the_o faith_n act._n 13.8_o have_v thus_o satisfy_v the_o question_n of_o becane_n to_o the_o full_a and_o more_o than_o be_v needful_a dispel_v their_o cloudy_a mist_n and_o break_v the_o snare_n of_o these_o spider_n web_n and_o so_o make_v up_o into_o a_o perfect_a concord_n and_o harmony_n all_o the_o suppose_a english_a jar_n about_o the_o king_n supremacy_n there_o now_o remain_v nothing_o but_o the_o jesuit_n epilogue_n or_o conclusion_n which_o by_o change_v only_o the_o person_n and_o term_n i_o may_v most_o apt_o and_o just_o return_v upon_o the_o papist_n in_o this_o manner_n the_o conclusion_n all_o then_o that_o have_v be_v hitherto_o say_v may_v be_v reduce_v unto_o three_o head_n the_o first_o be_v that_o the_o king_n supremacy_n in_o the_o church_n be_v a_o ancient_a right_n &_o no_o new_a thing_n but_o first_o ordain_v by_o christ_n the_o ancient_a of_o day_n and_o be_v practise_v in_o the_o old_a time_n by_o the_o most_o approve_a and_o pious_a king_n in_o the_o old_a testament_n but_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n be_v never_o use_v by_o any_o sound_n and_o godly_a bishop_n of_o rome_n before_o that_o infamous_a emperor_n phocas_n &_o therefore_o a_o new_a thing_n never_o right_o claim_v the_o other_o that_o there_o be_v so_o many_o jar_n and_o disagreement_n among_o the_o romish_a clergy_n about_o this_o primacy_n of_o the_o pope_n that_o it_o be_v not_o manifest_a or_o certain_a what_o the_o say_a primacy_n be_v nor_o what_o force_n or_o authority_n the_o same_o have_v the_o three_o that_o the_o oath_n of_o this_o primacy_n can_v neither_o be_v exact_v by_o the_o pope_n nor_o may_v any_o papist_n take_v the_o same_o but_o the_o oath_n of_o the_o king_n supremacy_n may_v be_v exact_v by_o the_o king_n and_o observe_v of_o all_o his_o good_a subject_n heerehence_a three_o other_o question_n which_o may_v be_v make_v concern_v the_o subject_n will_v easy_o be_v answer_v there_o be_v three_o sort_n of_o subject_n which_o live_v in_o those_o region_n where_o the_o papacy_n bear_v sway_v 1._o the_o first_o be_v baronians_n who_o in_o truth_n acknowledge_v and_o swear_v to_o the_o pope_n supremacy_n that_o be_v to_o his_o direct_a supremacy_n for_o his_o indirect_a supremacy_n be_v direct_o ridiculous_a 2._o the_o second_o bellarminians_n or_o pope-puritan_n who_o do_v not_o acknowledge_v this_o supremacy_n and_o yet_o swear_v unto_o it_o 3._o the_o three_o be_v true_a believe_a protestant_n who_o neither_o acknowledge_v it_o nor_o will_v swear_v it_o the_o first_o question_n than_o be_v what_o may_v be_v say_v of_o these_o baronian_n i_o answer_v that_o they_o do_v unwise_o and_o inconsiderat_o the_o reason_n be_v because_o it_o be_v folly_n &_o rashness_n to_o swear_v a_o thing_n that_o be_v doubtful_a &_o uncertain_a as_o for_o example_n the_o pope_n supremacy_n as_o be_v manifest_a by_o their_o jar_n and_o dissension_n which_o heretofore_o we_o have_v show_v the_o second_o question_n be_v what_o may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o bellarminians_n or_o pope-puritan_n i_o answer_v they_o be_v perjure_a person_n and_o politician_n the_o reason_n be_v because_o they_o believe_v one_o thing_n and_o swear_v another_o for_o they_o agree_v and_o consent_v therein_o with_o the_o right_n and_o orthodoxal_a protestant_n and_o yet_o with_o the_o baronian_n they_o swear_v allegiance_n to_o the_o pope_n as_o to_o the_o lord_n paramount_n of_o the_o whole_a world_n in_o temporal_a thing_n for_o pope_n paul_n the_o five_o do_v challenge_v the_o same_o and_o this_o they_o do_v to_o keep_v a_o external_a and_o political_a peace_n which_o be_v more_o esteem_v by_o they_o than_o their_o faith_n and_o religion_n and_o therefore_o be_v brand_v by_o carerius_fw-la in_o his_o public_a writing_n and_o authorize_v to_o be_v impious_a politician_n and_o haeretique_n of_o this_o time_n and_o not_o to_o be_v call_v christian_n and_o of_o who_o pope_n paul_n the_o five_o may_v true_o assirme_v that_o he_o have_v find_v more_o truth_n and_o honesty_n in_o the_o high-land_n and_o border_a thief_n then_o in_o this_o sort_n of_o aequinocate_a people_n the_o three_o question_n be_v what_o shall_v we_o say_v of_o the_o protestant_n who_o be_v the_o right_a and_o true_a catholic_n i_o answer_v they_o be_v iustand_v upright_o man_n who_o walk_v before_o god_n in_o truth_n and_o verity_n they_o be_v sincere_a who_o profess_v with_o their_o mouth_n that_o which_o they_o believe_v in_o their_o hart_n they_o be_v true_o courageous_a who_o with_o good_a eleazarus_n have_v rather_o die_v than_o consent_n to_o any_o unlawful_a thing_n no_o not_o so_o much_o as_o in_o outward_a show_n they_o be_v like_a unto_o the_o apostle_n who_o endeavour_n to_o obey_v god_n rather_o